CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES L-ij^ja ;^S^!Si2!Effi;M pi'lliiiiv. liipl'ili •.■? I HORNADAY - PHILLIPS 4481 ' OfarncU IntoEraitjj ffilibrara Utijaca. £}ctp ^nrk BOUGHT WITH THE INCOME OF THE FISKE ENDOWMENT FUND THE BEQUESTOF WILLARD FISKE LIBRARIAN OF THE UNIVERSITY 1868-1863 1905 lUU. ,jfu2^. y^^^^^^ /9o7 F 1090 hST'" ""'""""' "-'""^ olin 3 1924 028 905 334 Cornell University Library The original of this book is in the Cornell University Library. There are no known copyright restrictions in the United States on the use of the text. http://www.archive.org/details/cu31924028905334 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES Copyright, 1905, by John INI. PhiUips. The Finest Mountain Goat Picture Taken at eight feet. CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES BY WILLIAM T. HORNADAY, Sc.D. DIRECTOR OF THE NEW YORK ZOOLOGICAL PARK AUTHOR OF "THE AMERICAN NATURAL HISTORY" ILLUSTRATIONS BY JOHN M. PHILLIPS PENNSYLVANIA STATE GAME COMMISSIONER WITH SEVENTY ILLUSTRATIONS AND TWO MAPS NEW YORK CHARLES SCRIBNER'S SONS 1907 '^ — ■Asa. COI-YBIGHT, 1906, BY WILLIAM T. HORNADAY Published, October, 1906 TROW DIRECTORY MINTING AND BOOKBINDING COMPANY NEW YORK PREFACE My friends are called upon to bear witness that of the various hunting trips I have enjoyed in the late lamented Wild West, I have written of one only. That was twenty years ago. For so large a sum of outdoor enjoyment which might have been set forth in print, my sight drafts upon the reading public have been by no means extravagant. Even up to the end of our hunt in British Columbia, I had no thought of bookmaking ; but now that the hunt is over, and we are out of those wonderful mountains, a printed record seems worth while. The land looms up so grandly, its wild creatures seem so interesting, and Mr. Phillips's pictures so fine, it would seem churlish to refuse the labor that will place them before those who care to enjoy them. Moreover, detailed information of nature as it exists to-day on the summits of the Colum- bian Rockies is not so outrageously abundant that this volume is likely to be crowded off the shelf by other books on that subject. One month ago to-day we scrambled out of the mountains of southeastern British Columbia, tired, torn, and travel-stained, but with the wheels of Time turned back about five years. Three months ago literary com- VI PREFACE position was unendurable nerve torture. To-night, how^- ever, with the roar of the mountain torrents, the whistle of the wind on the passes, and the tinkle of the horse- bell in my ears, I begin the writing of these pages as cheerfully as if I never had known an official care. I am disposed to tell of the wonders of that mountain land, where we found health and vigor while climbing after grand game. We feel like saying to the tired business man, the overworked professional man, and the sleepless newspaper man,— go, thou, and do likewise! This is merely a story of recreations with big game, with a few notes on nature. Next to the necessity of a strenuous trip into mountain wilds, my chief object was to get into the home of the mountain goat, and learn at first hand something of the strange personality of that remarkable animal. The most valuable result of the trip, however, is Mr. Phillips's wonderful photographs of a live mountain goat, secured at risks to life and limb that were really unjustifiable. Until our mountain diversion was half over, I had not realized that so much of living interest in nature, of good luck in hunting, of rare success in photography, and unalloyed delight in camp life could be packed into the limits of one vacation hunting trip; but that expe- rience established a new record. At first I could not understand how Mr. Phillips could find interest in going to the same region for five trips in succession; but now I know. It is the mystic Spell of the Mountains! We dread the day of the ranch, the road, the railway, and the coal-mine, — anjrwhere near the Elk and the Bull PREFACE vii Rivers. We left behind us all those " improvements " on the face of nature, and went far beyond the last tin can of civilization. For many miles our men had to chop out a trail for the pack-train before we could get on. Some of our travel was laborious, and some of it dangerous ; but there was no accident. In every respect both the outfit and the trip were ideal. No doubt all persons who are' interested in the photographing of wild animals in their haunts will desire to know how Mr. Phillips obtained the moun- tain goat photographs which are reproduced in this volume. They were made with a Hawk-Eye Stereo Camera, No. i. Mr. Phillips never has used a tele- photo lens. His series of photographs of the moun- tain goat represent what I believe to be the most dar- ing, and also the most successful, feat in big-game photography ever accomplished. W. T. H. New York, November i, 1905. CONTENTS CHAPTER I PACE The Pilgrimage to Goatland i The Delectable Mountains — Over the Great Northern — The Sweet- Grass Hills — Into the Rockies — The Fernie Game-Protectors — Brit- ish Columbia Game-Laws too Liberal. CHAPTER n In the Valley of Elk River lo Femie and Michel — Mr. Crahan and his Hotel — Return of Professor H. F. Osborn and his Family — The Members of our Outfit — The First Wild Animal — ^Jack Pine Timber — Sheep Mountain — "My Moun- tain," for a Month — A Marten Trap — Fool- Hens. CHAPTER HI A Golden Day on Fording River 24 A Bath in the Sulphur Spring — A Ride to Fording River — Cut-Throat Trout galore — Josephine Falls — Evening over the Elk Valley. CHAPTER IV Travel in the Mountains 35 " House-Roof Mountains " — Making Up Packs — When Charlie Threw Down his Pack — Valley Thoroughfares — Green Timber — Down Timber — Trail-Cutting — Berries of the Mountains. CONTENTS CHAPTER V PAGE The Mountain Goat at Home 46 Our Welcome to Goatland — Three Goats Stampede through our Camp — A Wild Spot — Mountain Color on, a Gray Day — An Early-Morning Caller — Goats at Rest — How Goats Climb— Stalking Two Big Billies — Two Goats Killed — Measurements and Weight. CHAPTER VI On Bird Mountain : Photographing Mountain Sheep 6^ A Mountain Cyclorama — The Continental Divide — Phillips Peak — A Land Unmapped and Unmeasured — Mountain Altitudes along Elk River — Statement by Geologist McEvoy — Mountain Sheep Afoot — Photographing Two Sheep on the Goat Rocks — Sheep and Goats Seen at the Same Moment. CHAPTER VII A Great Day with Goats 77 Goats Far Up — The Climb, and its Difficulties — An Elusive Pair — Ten Big Billies at Hand — Observations of an Hour — Four Goats Killed, and Utilized — The Tallest Goat, and the Heaviest — Rolling Car- casses — Down Avalanche Creek to a Beautifiil Camp. CHAPTER VIII The Mountain Goat as we Saw Him 92 A Mountain Goat's Paradise — General Character of the Animal — Its Place in Nature — Not an "Antelope" — Description — Distribution — Food — Sleeping-Places — Accidents in Snow-Slides — Swimming — Stupid or Not Stupid — Courage — A Philosophic Animal — Affection — Fighting Powers — A Goat Kills a Grizzly — Bear-Shy Goats — The Tragedy of the Self- Trapped Goats. CHAPTER IX Timber- Line and Summit 127 One- Eyed Men in the Mountains — A Mountain Savant — A Climbs in False Notch — Foot and Nerve Exhaustion — A Daring Goat — Ex- periments — The Component Parts of Mountain-Sides — Temperature Record of a Climber — A Great Basin and a Bull Elk — A Tree Scarred by a Mountain Ram. CONTENTS xi CHAPTER X PAGE Alone on a Mountain 145 Getting Next to Nature — Waterfall Notch — The Pika at Home — Ground-Squirrels and Grizzly Bears — Temptation Goats — Variations between Summits — Fool-Hens and Ptarmigan — Dwarf Spruces — Bull River— Mule-Deer Grounds — Berries of the Mountains — Charlie Smith Finds Grizzly-Bear Signs. CHAPTER XI My Grizzly Bear-Day 159 Rubbing-Trees of Bears — Fresh Grizzly "Signs" Reported — A Trip to the Goat Remains — A Silver-Tip at Work — Her Death — The Autopsy — Amateur Photography and its Results — The Bear's Cache — Wolverines Observed — A Jollification in Camp. CHAPTER XII Notes on the Grizzly Bear 17a Rarity of the Grizzly in the United States — Seasons — The Grizzly Bear's Calendar — Solitary Habits — Food of Grizzlies — A Carrion Feeder — Weight of Grizzlies — "Grizzly" or "Silver-Tip" — Re- strictions in Killing. CHAPTER XIII Photographing a Mountain Goat at Six Feet . 181 "Wild-Animal Photography — A Subject on the Crags — At the Head of the Grand Slide — The Billy Goat at Bay — Exposures at Six Feet — The Glaring Eyes of the Camera Stops a Charge — At Last the Subject Stands Calmly and Looks Pleasant — In Peril from a " Dead " Knee — A Sleepless Night from the Perils of the Day. CHAPTER XIV A Rainy Day in Camp 199 The Finest of all Camps — A Record-Breaking Cook — Fearful Slaughter of Comestibles — Drying Meat from Big Game — A Good Method Described — The Norboe Brothers — Trapping on Bull River — ^The Trappers' Bill of Fare — Mack Norboe' s Biggest Bear — The Big Bear that Got Away. xii CONTENTS CHAPTER XV PAGE Camp-Fire Tales 212 Charlie Smith's Story — An Outlaw in Camp — A Silent Death Sentence — The Pursuers of Tom Savage Find Him — His Fate — John Norboe Introduces Old John Campbell — Trying to be Chased by a Grizzly — The Bear that Fell into the Fire. CHAPTER XVI More Camp-Fire Yarns 221 The Charge of The Duchess — The Death of the Duke of Wellington — The Horror of the Rocks — The Sheep that Couldn't be Caught — The Matches that Wouldn't Light. CHAPTER XVII A Great Mountain Sheep Hunt 235 Variations in Sheep Hunting — Artistic Value of Scenery in Hunting — John Norboe' s Peril— Camp Necessity — Remarkable Goat Licks — Sheep Signs — A Very Long Stalk— Attack in a Wind Storm — Misses and Hits — Mack Norboe' s "Hungers" — Three Dead Rams — A Night of Terror. CHAPTER XVIII Mountain Sheep Notes 250 The Culminating Point ot a Species — Measurements of Record Heads — Range of the Big-Horn — The White Sheep — The Black Sheep — Fannin's Sheep — Fighting Noses of our Specimens — Reinforcement of the Neck — Captain Radcliffe's Opinion About Broken Tips — Measurements of our Sheep — Comparative Dimensions of Sheep, Goat and Mule Deer — Comparison of Sheep and Goat — Enemies of Mountain Sheep — Impending Extinction in British Columbia. CHAPTER XIX A Panoramic Grizzly-Bear Hunt 265 Luck as a Factor in Bear Hunting — An Exhausting Climb — A Silver-Tip Sighted — Mr. Phillips and Mack Run for it — A Summit Stroll Be- tween the Acts— The Ball Opens — A Long Chase — Snap-Shots Only, and at Long Range — A Good Long Shot — Mack's Fusillades — A Foot-Shot Bear, and Chaff for the Victors. CONTENTS xiii CHAPTER XX PAGE Avalanche and Slide-Rock a8o The "Snow-Slide" — An Ideal Mountain Section — Creek Buried Under Slide-Rock — Timber Wrecked by Avalanche — Slides and Wild Ani- mals — How Slides Originate — Twelve Slides in One Mile — Slide- Rock — How Mountain Peaks Change to Steep Slopes — An Object Lesson in False Notch. CHAPTER XXI The Small Neighbors of the Big Game .... 293 Animal Life on the Summits — The Little Chief "Hare" — A Four- Footed Haymaker — The Fate of "Little Mike" — The Columbia River Ground-Squirrel — A Tiny Chipmunk — A Plethoric Ground- Squirrel — The Yellow-Haired Porcupine — The Pine Squirrel — The Pack-Rat — The Hoary Marmot — The Wolverine — The Trappers' Evil Genius — Species of Depredations — Charlie Smith Gets Square with an Enemy — A Wolverine Caught Aliye. CHAPTER XXII Small Neighbors of the Big Game (Continued) . 312 The Pine Marten — The Coyote — Mule Deer — Winter Birds Only — Franklin Grouse, or " Fool-Hen " — White-Tailed Ptarmigan — Harlequin Duck — Water Ouzel — Eagles and Hawks — Clark's Nut- cracker — Canada Jay and Magpie. CHAPTER XXIII Down Avalanche Creek, and Out 321 Cutting our Way Out — A Side Trip to High Sununits — Discovery of Lake Josephine — A Camp for Three — A Lofty Hunting Ground — My Luck Against the Storm-Clouds — A Body-Racking Descent — ^The Struggle for a Trail Out — Mr. Phillips and I Go Out on Foot — The Jack Pine, Down and Up — Running Logs Over Down Timber — Out at Last. xiv CONTENTS CHAPTER XXIV PAGE Captive Mountain Goats ^^^2 Record of Captive Goats Exhibited — Perilous Capture by Smith and Norboe — An Easy Capture — A Game Warden in Trouble — First Specimens for New York — Others from Fort Steele — Shipping Ani- mals by Express — The Author Becomes Travelling Companion for Five Goat Kids — Traits in Captivity — A Glance Backward. Index = . 345 ILLUSTRATIONS Except when otherwise noted, all these illustrations are from photographs made by John M. Phillips, and have been reproduced without the slightest al- teration or retouching. The Finest Mountain Goat Picture Frontispiece Michel, British Columbia, Looking West. page Photograph by Thomas Crahan 12 Elk River 16 Hornaday Mountain 20 Trout Fishing at Josephine Falls 28 The Pack-Train Leaving Sulphur Spring Camp 32 Fording Elk River 38 The Valley of Goat Creek 44 Goats Running through our Camp 48 The Size of a Mountain Goat 52 Weighing Mountain Goat No. i by Sections 58 "The Moment of Triumph," — caught unawares 62 Phillips Peak, from Bird Mountain 68 A Female Sooty Grouse 70 Female Ptarmigan, in Summer Plumage 70 Young Mountain Sheep Ram 74 The Sky Pasture of the Thirteen "Billy" Goats .... 82 Taking the First Shot 82 A Mountain Goat at Home 86 Front Foot of a Mountain Goat. Drawn by Miss Helen Ingersoll 98 XV xvi ILLUSTRATIONS FACING PAGE Hind Foot of a Mountain Goat. Drawn by Miss IngersoU 98 The Function of a Mountain Goat's Rear Dew-claws. Drawn by Miss Ingersoll 98 Bottom of a Mountain Goat's Foot. Drawn by Miss Ingersoll 102 Bottom of a Sheep's Foot . . . Drawn by Miss Ingersoll 102 Skeleton of an Adult Male Mountain Goat 102 Timber-Line in Winter 130 A Big-Horn Ram's Signature 142 Goat Lick on the Southern Slope of Cyclorama Ridge . . 142 Early Morning on Goat Pass 146 The Little Hay-Maker of the Slide-Rock 150 The Grizzly's Lawful Prey — The Columbia River Ground Squirrel 150 The Author's Grizzly Bear. Photograph by W. T. Hornaday 168 The Scene of Two Actions — Goats and Grizzly . . . .170 Mr. Phillips's Grizzly 176 The Haunt of the Camera Goat 182 The Face of the Precipice from Below, with Goat in situ . 186 The Goat on the Stratified Rock 188 The Goat at Ease 190 An Angry Mountain Goat at Close Quarters 192 The Goat Climbing Down and Away 194 Mr. Phillips's most Dangerous Position, Drawn by Charles B. Hudson 196 A Rainy Day in Camp 206 "The Lunch Counter" at Camp Hornaday 214 Mr. Phillips's Finest Mountain Sheep 244 The Brooklyn Ram, Thirty Minutes after Death .... 248 A Prize Big-Horn Head 254 Head of a Black Mountain Sheep 254 ILLUSTRATIONS xvii PAGE Head of Largest Big-Horn Ram, side view 260 Head of Largest Big-Horn Ram, front view 260 Mr. Phillips Regrets the Impending Extinction of the Grizzly Bear 278 The Might of a Snow-Slide 282 A Great Snow-Slide . . . Drawn by Charles B. Hudson 286 A Snow-Comb at Timber-Line 288 The Pack-Train on a Great Field of Slide-Rock .... 290 The Western Yellow-Haired Porcupine 304 Canada Lynx, in Trap . . . Photograph by C. L. Smith 304 The Wolverine, in Trap . . Photograph by C. L. Smith 310 The Wolverine in New York. Photograph by E. R. Sanborn 310 A Dark-Skinned Marten 314 A Typical Marten Trap • . 314 The Haunt of the Harlequin Duck 318 The Water Ouzel 318 A Typical Mountain Lakelet 324 Packing up the Trophies 328 The Tangle of "Dead" and "Down" Timber, Avalanche Creek 33° Log-Running over « Down " Timber 330 Risking his Life for a Kid . Drawn by Charles B. Hudson 334 A Newly-Captured Mountain Goat Kid 336 Kaiser, looking for Goats 342 MAPS Sketch Map of the Elk and Bull River Region, East Koote- nay, B. C By John M. Phillips 8 Distribution of the White Mountain Goat. By W. T. Hornaday 106 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES CHAPTER I THE PILGRIMAGE TO GOATLAND The Delectable Mountains — Over the Great Northern — The Sweet- Grass Hills — Into the Rockies — The Fernie Game-Protectors — British Columbia Game-Laws too Liberal. In an unguarded moment, Mr. John M. Phillips, of Pittsburg, — true sportsman, game-protector, mountaineer, photographer and genial gentleman, all in one,* — told me of some wonderful mountains in the far West. He said they are well filled with game, and as yet wholly unspoiled by hunters. There the mountain goat abounds, and can be studied to excellent advantage. There are grizzly bears and mountain sheej) which may be killed under license, and a few elk which may not. In that wonderland of Nature no sportsman has yet set foot without Mr. Phillips's consent and cooperatipn; for it was discovered by him and his guides, and by them is carefully preserved from ruin. Thoughtlessly, I voiced my long-standing desire to * Mr. Phillips is also State Game Commissioner, and the founder of the Lewis and Clark Club. I 2 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES see many mountain goats at home, in fine mountains ; and straightway my good friend graciously invited me to accompany him on his next trip. Before the invitation could be withdrawn and cancelled, it was accepted. Being averse to deep snow as the basis of a pleasure- trip, I voted for September as the month, and although Mr. Phillips thought that the chances for finding griz- zlies in that month were not great, he readily consented. Never having gone through northern Montana from end to end, I bespoke the selection of the Great Northern Railway as our route from St. Paul, and we found that the panorama of Montana thus secured was delightful as well as instructive. The country traversed by the Northern Pacific Rail- way is to me almost as familiar as my own door-yard; but what lay north of the Missouri? And wherein would it differ? Through the level and fertile wheat-lands of northern Minnesota, there run so many parallels and feeders of the Great Northern system that the " main line " is almost a fiction of the past. The tenderfoot needs to be told which section he is riding upon. From St. Paul up to the latitude of Grand Forks, even a new trolley-line would seem to be an inexcusable extravagance. A ride in August through the heart of our great north-western wheat-belt is an event. Mile after mile, and hour after hour, the sea of golden grain is being swept in by the harvesters, bound into millions of bun- dles, — ^with the least possible expenditure of labor, — shocked, loaded and hauled to the threshers. Hither, THE PILGRIMAGE TO GOATLAND 3 yonder, anywhere, the steam thresher " 'lights " for a few hours, and a section of the wheat-laden plain is thrust into its insatiable maw. No longer does the farmer and his labor-swapping neighbors toil and moil on the straw- stack, as of yore. The automatic stacker does all that, while the farmer busies himself with gathering in the spoil. The straw-heaps dot the stubble-fields at near in- tervals, and with the baled product selling in New York at $18 per ton, these reckless north-western nabobs burn their stra'ii}\ In the days of the bufifalo millions, this country was a part of the summer range of the great northern herd. And it was to these same smoothly shaven plains, in North Dakota, delightfully free from the sage-brush that per- vades the lands farther south, that the Red River settlers, of what is now Manitoba, came every summer with their great caravans of carts, accompanied by their wives and children. They came to kill buffaloes, dry their meat, make pemmican and cure buffalo-hides for leather, — all for use during the long and dreary winters that tried ,men's souls. The naked plains over which the Red River settlers joyously drove their carts are now covered with wheat. The creaky cart has given place to the locomo- tive. The steam thresher has taken the place of the half- breed's rifle, while to the present generation pemmican is almost unknown. And now, when at last we are surfeited by the abun- dance of the harvest, and worn out with thankfulness for the continued prosperity of the great wheat-belt, we glide on into Montana, and turn with even keener inter- 4 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES est to a new panorama, — the late lamented " Wild West." Throughout the once great but now greatly dimin- ished Sioux Indian Reservation, canvas tepees, log cabins, blanketed braves, broad-beamed squaws and paintless wagons abound. The Fort Peck Reservation, as it is called, begins near Calais and extends to Whateley, about eighty miles. The time was when the Sioux were picturesque, uncertain, and at times even thrilling. As tame Indians, with no more buffalo-herds to tempt them upon the war-path, the Sioux look commonplace. When I think how the souls of their hunters must yearn for the chase, and how even the excitement of horse-stealing is denied them, I pity them. It is no wonder that even with horses in abundance, parties of young Sioux of the " warrior " class used to go down to the Crow Reserva- tion, two hundred miles or more, steal horses and run them up north of the Missouri, purely for the excitement of the chase. South-east of Fort Assiniboin, about forty miles away, is a mountain mass of considerable magnitude. It is the Bear Paw Mountains, once good hunting-grounds for big game, but now " hunted out." All along the line of the Great Northern, from Minnesota to the mountains, there is an astonishing absence of sage-brush. It is so abundant along the Northern Pacific west of the Mis- souri that I expected to see a good showing of it farther north. But there is so little of it that it fails to count; and there is no other plains brush to take its place. South of the Sweet-Grass Hills, for instance, the prairie THE PILGRIMAGE TO GOATLAND 5 is like a smoothly shaven lawn. On hundreds of square miles of it, we see not a tree, nor a bush as thick as a pen- holder. More than this, there is no rank grass, and the earth looks as if it were covered with a vast and all- pervading sheet of cocoa matting. Upon it, a jack-rabbit looms up to enormous proportions, — or would if there were one left to loom. It is from this smoothly shaven and almost level world of brown-gray that the three peaks of the Sweet- Grass Hills rise suddenly and sharply out of the plain, without a vestige of intervening foot-hills. Rising as they do, they seem lofty, steep-sided, black and even un- canny. From certain points you see that they stand on a wide and almost level bench, like three mineral speci- mens on a thin pedestal. Notice particularly the bench that joins the western side of the most westerly peak. Miles and miles to the westward, it rises very abruptly, and with its top almost level, it runs up toward the peak without the slightest break in its upper line. These Hills are about forty miles from the railway, and for fully one hour the train glides along seemingly due south of them. The Great Northern reaches the main range of the Rocky Mountains at Midvale, and the transition from plains to mountains is made quite abruptly. Here the Rockies are not in the least like those crossed by the Union Pacific, — so modest and uneventful you scarce know where they begin or leave ofif. You can plant your foot on the very spot where these begin; and from that spot they tower up to the heights of your imagina- 6 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES tion of what real mountains should be. The foot of these mountains marks the eastern boundary of what now is the great Lewis and Clark Forest Reserve, embracing the whole main range of the Rockies from the inter- national boundary southward, one hundred and thirty- five miles, to the lower end of the Flathead Reservation. As you glide smoothly along the south fork of the Flathead River, you are aware of much dead timber, both standing and " down." Unless you are an old cam- paigner, however, the sight of those tracts of " down timber " does not strike any terror to your soul. But wait! One week hence, and you shall learn, by wrench of joint and sweat of brow, by ups and by downs, just how terrible fallen tree-trunks can become. From our first entry into the Rocky Mountains, at the edge of the Sweet-Grass plains, until a month later when we left them at that point bound east, we were never out of the highlands. The ride through to Rex- ford is a beautiful panorama of mountain scenery and vegetation. Hour by hour Mr. Phillips devoured it with his eyes, missing not even one rock or tree, or one emerald green pool of the clear mountain stream far below. Like a hair-pin on the map, the Kootenay River comes down from British Columbia into the north-west- ern corner of Montana, bends westward for a short dis- tance, then turns and runs north again — as if it had found Montana an inhospitable country. At the extreme east- ern angle of the big bend is the -backwoods hamlet of Rexford; and be it known that the section of the Great Northern from Columbus Falls to Spokane direct is no THE PILGRIMAGE TO GOATLAND 7 longer the " main line," but a branch. The main line runs up to Rexford, and thence down to Spokane. At Rexford, we changed to the branch line of the Great Northern which runs up the east bank of the Kootenay, into British Columbia. At Gateway we had the pleasure of seeing the mythical International Boun- dary, and standing astride it. It lies across the railway- platform, and is painted white. Near by, a bronze monu- ment has been erected to its memory. This branch brings us to the Canadian Pacific Rail- way at Fernie, the metropolis of the great soft-coal min- ing district known as the " Fernie district." It is in the extreme south-eastern corner of British Columbia. At Fernie, Attorney H. W. Herchmer, president of the local Game Protective Association, gave us a royal welcome, and turned over to us the two non-resident hunting-licenses which he had procured at our request. The licenses cost us $50 each. They conveyed full war- rant of law for the holder to kill five mountain goats (sex not mentioned), three mountain sheep rams, griz- zly bear without number, six deer (sexes immaterial), and one bull moose. Elk are absolutely protected. When on our way out, we stopped in Fernie over night, and President Herchmer called a special meet- ing of the Fernie District Game Protective Association, at his home. During this meeting we discussed the game law. We objected to the goat item, on the ground that no man should be permitted to kill more than three goats in a year; and we held that females should not be killed 8 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES at all. Any man who is unable to distinguish an adult male from a female should not be permitted to hunt goats. We objected to the limit of three mountain sheep rams, on the ground that in view of the scarcity of those animals, one ram in one year is enough for one man. " Six deer " should be changed to " three male deer," and unlimited grizzly bears to one only. STATEMENT OF LICENSE LAW Legal to kill in 1905: As it should be: 5 Caribou (males only), 3 male Caribou, 5 Goats, 3 male Goats, 3 Mountain Sheep Rams, i Sheep ram of each species, 5 Deer, 3 Male Deer of each species, 2 Moose (males only), i Grizzly Bear, Unlimited Grizzly Bears, 2 Black Bears, Unlimited Black Bears, No Moose south of lat. 52° until No elk. 1910, No elk on mainland until 1920. The present law prohibiting the sale of game heads is admirable, but it needs more rigid enforcement than at this date (1905) prevails. So long as large sheep heads are worth from $25 to $50 each, unmounted, just so long will hunters and taxidermists take risks in selling them. The big game of British Columbia is a public asset of very considerable value. If rightly protected and exploited, it can be made to yield to the southern dis- tricts many thousands of dollars annually, — in the hire of guides and horses, the purchase of supplies, and in license fees. At the same time, by carefully protecting all 1900 ll"'i:W I; I'V A/lr.^naXi. i. US" SKETCH MAP i'^ tj y'SiimmIt KLlv AXI> BVLiL KIVBI^ I ''■''"°™*S^%»E*^|^;*-:j.^ REGION O.^ r \" ^..JvWs.-:*-. EAST IvO«TK>AY B.C. f/i By -o0-3«- THE PILGRIMAGE TO GOATLAND 9 female animals, the game can be maintained at a point which does not spell extinction. The Fernie District Game Protective Association was not organized a mo- ment too soon. Its work is cut out for it, and it is to be hoped that it will retain a large membership, together with a large annual income, in order that it may have the power to protect. Game cannot be really protected without the expenditure of some money. Possibly my American Reader may be tempted to think that all this is of little interest to him; but not so. The perpetual preservation of the grand game of the grand mountain-land just beyond our northern boundary is of interest to every American sportsman; and I hope this seeming digression will be endorsed. Mr. Phillips and I have strongly recommended to the Fernie Association that immediate steps be taken by the provincial parliament to permanently set aside, as a game preserve, the country between the Bull and Elk Rivers, with Charles L. Smith in charge of it as warden. The reasons for such a step are too many to mention here, but let me say that there are practically no reasons against it. Whoever aids in preserving from extinction the grand game of British Columbia renders good ser- vice to two countries. CHAPTER II IN THE VALLEY OF ELK RIVER Fernie and Michel — Mr. Crahan and his Hotel — Return of Professor H. F. Osborn and his Family — The Members of our Outfit — The First Wild Animal — Jack Pine Timber — Sheep Mountain — "My Mountain," for a Month — A Marten Trap — Fool-Hens. We are constitutionally opposed to long delays in journeys to hunting-grounds, either on the rails or on paper; but in the valley of Elk River we found so much of interest it is impossible to ignore this gateway to our garden of the gods. I have already said that a spur of the Great North- ern Railway reaches Fernie, the Phcenix City of the great soft-coal mining district, which incendiaries seem determined to wipe off the earth by fire, but which re- fuses to stay burned down. It is on the Crow's Nest branch of the Canadian Pacific Railway, which breaks through the main range of the Rockies at Crow's Nest Pass about one hundred and twenty miles south of Banff and the main line. At Fernie you feel that you have fully arrived in British Columbia, for on all sides lofty mountains loom up and frown down in rock-ribbed maj- esty. One peak of commanding presence, north of the town, is about to be christened Owl's Head; but the name is not satisfactorily apt. The top of the peak looks IN THE VALLEY OF ELK RIVER ii much like a flying dragon, carved in stone, but little like an owl. At Fernie any person (with money) can buy almost anything in the outfit line, from a trout-hook to an auto- mobile. The hotels are excellent, and the men of our kind are courteous and hospitable. There are goats on the mountains within ten miles of the town, available for those who have no time to go farther. We took an east-bound train, ran on north up the Elk River about fourteen miles, then left the Elk Valley and turned abruptly eastward. After four miles more, up Michel Creek, through a timbered valley as level as a dancing-floor and not much wider, we reached the town of Michel, our last stop by rail. Michel is a French name, and in conformity with the one invari- able rule in French pronunciation — never pronounce a French word as it is spelled, — it is pronounced Me-shell'. The town is a mile and a quarter long by five hundred feet wide; and along the sides, no suburbs need apply, because there is no room for them. Immediately beyond the outermost houses the mountains rise up and up, steep as a house-roof, and very high. To-day the bare slide- ways that already lead down the northern slope give grim warning of what can happen hereafter. The town is strung along the bottom of a V-shaped trough in the mountains, and every spring we will dread to hear of its partial burial under a million tons of snow, ice, tree- trunks and slide-rock. It reminds one of the fatalistic Italian peasant villages on the slopes of Vesuvius. All Michel is painted Indian-red. The Crow's Nest 12 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES Coal Company owns the whole place; red is a good, cheap, durable color, and what more would you have? The coal-mines are in both the northern and southern mountains, the veins are very thick, the coal is good, and the profits are said to be eminently satisfactory to the parties of the first part. The post-office is a freak, no more, no less. Not the slightest attention was paid to " In care of Charles L. Smith " on our letters ; and to find the office open one must stalk the postmaster as if he were a mountain lion. The Hotel Michel is a wonder. In a small mining town, in the heart of a wilderness, one does not expect much of a hotel; but here is every needful luxury, and from bottom to top everything is as clean as a new knife. The food is excellent, and the service away above par. All this excellence is due to Mr. Thomas Crahan, an American, who is one of the most interesting men in that region. The story of how he tamed the bar-room when he assumed control of the hotel, and has since ruled it with a hand of steel in a velvet glove, is both interest- ing and instructive as a study in conglomerate human nature. Twenty-four nationalities are represented in that little town, and the place is quiet and peaceful to the point of dulness. Three weeks previous to our arrival, Professor Henry Fairfield Osborn, of New York, took his family up the valley of the Elk to the Sulphur Springs, for an outing under canvas, with plenty of fishing and photography. We found them all on the veranda of the hotel, happy and aglow with the spell of the mountains. They said it was IN THE VALLEY OF ELK RIVER 13 the finest mountain trip they had ever had, — and they have had a-many. They discovered and christened Josephine Falls, and caught eighteen-inch trout in Fording River until con- science called a halt. On the lofty clay bluffs of Ford- ing River, quite near the Falls, Professor Osborn, with the aid of Charlie Smith, Mack Norboe and Dog Kaiser, cornered a pair of mountain goats and photo- graphed them! And after that the guides took the Pro- fessor up Goat Creek, and on the peak which we soon made haste to christen Mount Osborn, he photographed more goats. Mr. Phillips and I were among those pres- ent when the Professor first met Mrs. Osborn, his son and daughter on his return from the summits, and for the first time told them the story of his remarkable ex- perience with his camera and the goats it caught. It created a profound sensation. The only store in Michel is a department store, of astonishing size and scope. There we completed our outfit, down to the smallest detail. Mr. Phillips laid in a stock of provisions which fairly made me gasp at the luxuriance — and weight — of the array. I was prepared to fare briefly and to the point, because we were to travel by pack-train; but John believes in living well, and is what old-fashioned folk call " a good provider." For reasons of state, I laid in a special supply of salt, twine, allspice, pepper, oil, doctor's stuff and extra blankets, all of which played their respective parts in due season. When finally we got into our hunting-clothes and hit the trail, our outfit was absolutely perfect. From my 14 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES point of view, the supply of canned goods was too heavy; but later on I observed that we made away with nearly the whole of it. The party consisted of Mr. Phillips and the writer, two guides, a scout, a cook, a dog and eight horses. The guides were Charles L. Smith of the Elk River valley, and R. W. Norboe, of Meyers Falls, Washing- ton. John Norboe was the scout, and G. E. Huddleston was the cook. Kaiser was the official Dog, — and a finer hunting-dog I never associated with. Before the hunt ended, I once slept with him in my arms (to keep him warm) , and I think I earned his respect and friendship. From New York to Michel the continent seemed utterly barren of mammalian life, except in the- Sioux Reservation, where we saw a few gray-coated Franklin ground-squirrels {Citellus franklini). We saw neither antelope, coyote, swift nor prairie-dog! On the Dakota lakes and ponds there were a few ducks, enjoying im- munity until September; but the total number was small. At Charles L. Smith's ranch, on Elk River, five miles below Michel, we at last saw a Wild Animal! A big pack-rat (Neotoma) of sociable habits, calmly climbed into the grub-wagon that was to go as far up as Sulphur Springs, and settled itself for a migration at our expense. The stowaway was discovered, and the alarm sounded. There between two of the boxes, its head in full view under the edge of the tarpaulin, was as droll a face as could be imagined. The big black eyes looked at us inquiringly, but calmly, and even fearlessly. They said : " Well, what's all this noise about? Why don't you IN THE VALLEY OF ELK RIVER 15 drive on? You needn't be afraid of Me; I'm not afraid of You." How different would have been the action of a domestic rat! One of those villains would have leaped about, and rushed through that load like a murine cyclone, to hide from its just deserts. If cornered it would squeal, and bite, and fight all humanity, and finally be killed in ghoulish glee. But the optimistic attitude of that gray-furred and comfortable rascal in- stantly disarmed all hostility. At once a cry went up, " Save him for the Zoo! " Huddleston, the cook, put on his leather gloves, calmly plucked forth Neotoma from amid the boxes, and put him in a cage, to await our return. Around the ranches in the Elk River valley, these handsome and good-natured pack-rats were quite common. During the month we were in the mountains Mrs. Huddleston caught four more for me, alive and unhurt, but two escaped and two died. I think these creatures could easily be tamed and trained to perform a variety of tricks. They are so steady of nerve, so conscious of their own rectitude, and yet so original and versatile in mind, it seems to me they must be capable of successful training. Who will be the wise party to introduce to the world the first and only Troupe of Trained Rocky Mountain Neotomas? When 'tis done, I predict an astonishing display of mental capacity. On September 3d we " pulled our freight," literally, up the Elk Valley, in a lumber wagon, for one day's 1 6 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES easy march of twenty-two miles. A mile above Charlie Smith's ranch a deer was seen bounding away toward the river. At Frank Harmer's ranch, four miles farther on, we found the fresh tracks of a bear, and it was with some difficulty that I checked a digression into the jack pines to look for their maker. To Mr. Phillips it seemed morally wrong to let that bear go unscotched. Harmer's ranch is enclosed by a fence each panel of which was made of three big jack pine logs, a foot in diameter and about thirty feet long, neatly laid one above another, resting at each end on three logs of the same size about four feet long, laid squarely across the axis of the fence. Both in looks and utility it is a good fence, but rather heavy to build. At Connor's ranch, fifteen miles from town, we bought a pailful of delicious butter, at thirty-three cents a pound, and continued our northward flight. We forded Elk River, over an awful bed of bowlders that seemed certain to break a leg for each horse in the out- fit. A mile or so beyond that crossing we forded Ford- ing River and entered a long and beautiful stretch of jack pines, which revealed several interesting pages of natural history. In British Columbia the jack pine is not merely a tree; it is an institution.* At its best it is an arboreal column from ninety to one hundred and ten feet in * The Western Jack Pine, or Lodge-Pole Pine {Pinus diviricata). Its average height in the good soil of the Elk River valley is very close to one hundred feet, but its diameter is very small. The spread of a one-hundred- foot tree is only about eight feet. IN THE VALLEY OF ELK RIVER 17 height Its stem is like a gigantic toothpick which rises as straight and flawless as a ship's mast, and gradually tapers up to infinity. The regularity of the taper of the trunk, and the straightness of it, are wonderful. For about fifty feet up the branches are apt to be dead, and gray, and broken; but above that the fine evergreen branches thrust out a little way, most carefully however, in order not to be guilty of provoking a growth outside of the true perpendicular. Where a tract of timber has been thoroughly burned, in such valleys as that of the Elk, millions of young jack pines spring up. If ever you are tempted to make a short cut on foot through such a natural nursery, shun that lovely snare. Go around it rather than struggle through it. To forge directly through is a very trouble- some and tiresome event. A jack pine forest through which fire has recently passed, killing everything, makes one think of an army of skeletons on parade. As the stems lose their hold upon mother earth, and under press- ure of winds from all quarters, come sweeping down, they fall across each other, two, three or six deep, and create obstructions to travel of a most serious character. In British Columbia, " down timber " is an oft-recurring curse. Often it is a nuisance of the first magnitude. We saw much of down timber, before we were many days older, and upon one or two members of our little party it rang many changes. When you have travelled up the Elk Valley about ten miles from the railway, to your right, across two miles of valley there rises a fine mountain mass five miles long 1 8 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES and half a mile high. It is called Sheep Mountain, be- cause of the notable rams of Ovis canadensis which Mr. Phillips and his boon companions, Smith, Norboe and Jack Lewis, have killed and eaten upon its rock-ribbed sides. John never will forget his first ram, an inexperi- enced young creature, chased and shot on the central summit, late in October, with the wind blowing cold and strong, when he and Jack Lewis were benighted on the rocky top, without blankets or food. Later on he told me the whole story. At mid-day we halted for luncheon opposite a moun- tain which rises directly north of Sheep Mountain, and separated from it only by the narrow rift through which Pass Creek flows westward into the Elk. It is about four miles long, its height is about the same as Sheep Moun- tain, and by reason of its isolation it is clear-cut and monumental. I asked its name, and the men all admitted, with apologies, that it had none. Then Mr. Phillips announced, with convincing emphasis, that it should be named in my honor; and it was so set down. This was a very complimentary proposition, but on the official maps of British Columbia, the motion will hardly prevail. The local authorities will not tamely submit to the naming of so fine a mountain after a mythi- cal eastern " tourist." Nevertheless, for the brief month that we were in those wilds, that mountain was always spoken of in our party as my mountain, and I have at least known — for thirty days — how it feels to have a tall namesake of Nature's fashioning for my very own. Mile after mile, the wagon-trail led us along an ever- IN THE VALLEY OF ELK RIVER '9 green tunnel through a dense forest of jack pines, and on the way through we saw many interesting things. One of the first was two small saplings from which the bark had recently been stripped clean by an elk who wished to rub the velvet off his new antlers. And close beside the two white stems was a third sapling, the size of a walking-stick, which not only had been peeled but also bitten in two about four feet from the ground. It was good to see such fresh proofs of the fact that elk still survive in the valley of the Elk. The next object of special interest was a marten trap, close beside the trail. It was such as any good axeman can make in about two hours, with an axe and a sapling. It was a very neat piece of work. A spruce sapling about ten inches in diameter was cut off four feet above the ground, so squarely that the top of the stump was practically level. From somewhere or other, three very thin pieces of spruce, like shingles seven inches wide, were split off and driven into three cracks split in the top of the stump, cornering together to form a tight box, open on top and one side. Then a ten-foot length was cut out of the sapling stem, one end placed on the ground, and the other rested in the box with one side out. This was a deadfall. With two sticks a very simple trigger was made, the log was raised, the triggers fixed to hold it up, and a bait adjusted on the end of the long arm of the trigger. The upper end of the log was raised six inches above the edge of the stump. Result: The wan- dering marten smells the bait. He cannot reach it from above, so he climbs nimbly up the side of the stump. 20 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES crawls under the deadfall and into the shingle-box, seizes the bait with a greedy growl of exultation, and crash! the log comes down upon his devoted back, at $io per crash. There are many advantages about this axe-made marten trap. A wolverine cannot steal it and throw it into the nearest river; it is never stolen by the Bad Man of the Fernie District; it never rusts, it is cheap, and there is no need to " order it from the factory." The only drawback about it is that martens do not always range in timber suitable for deadfall traps. As we rode ahead of the wagon, Mr. Phillips on " Lady-Bug," Charlie on " Muggins," and I on old " Warrior," Dog Kaiser side-stepped into the jungle and gave tongue. In a deep, rich voice he cried " Oh ! Woo 1 woo ! woo ! " with his nose pointed upward into a low jack pine. " Fool-Hens," said Charlie, dismounting. About ten feet above Kaiser's nose sat a fine, full-plumaged male Franklin grouse, with a superbly black breast and neck, but no mental capacity. To all appearances it was a bird of only two ideas : ( i ) to forage on the ground until dis- turbed, and (2) when disturbed to fly only ten feet into the nearest tree and wait to be shot. Naturally, a bird with only two ideas is not long for this world. Five birds rose before the dog and perched in five nearby jack pines and spruces. I sat down within ten feet of a particularly intelligent-looking bird, while the others went off, and killed birds for supper. I wished to see how the noise and bustle would affect my bird's nerves. Hornaday Mountain Looking northeast across Elk River. IN THE VALLEY OF ELK RIVER 21 Using his 22-calibre pistol in a most business-like way Mr. Phillips proceeded to " pop " down the more distant birds, in rotation. At each shot I expected that my bird would either protest, or take wing; but it did neither. It calmly sat there, sodden in stupidity; it looked about in wonder, and waited until the hunters came up, all ready to add it to the bag. But some one interposed with a suggestion that the bag was already large enough, which was readily accepted. At last the bird was fairly driven to flight. With a loud whir of wings it disappeared in the forest, and I presume it is yet in that jungle, breeding fool-hens still more foolish than itself. With this strange bird, the pendulum seems to have swung the wrong way, and it will hardly survive through a sufficient number of generations to acquire the doctrine of self-preservation. It is a phenomenon. Charlie Smith tells this story of our genial friend, Mr. G. N. Monro, of Pittsburg, who has hunted in this region: Two years ago a party very much like ours was pass- ing through that same jack pine jungle. Mr. Monro and Mack Norboe were ahead, and as usual, some fool- hens were scared up. One alighted in a tree near the tenderfoot, who very naturally became fired with a desire to possess it. "Stop, Mack, stop!" said Mr. Monro. "Get my shot-gun out of the wagon, quickly." " What d'ye want it for? " asked Mack in his sepul- chral voice. 21 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES " To shoot this grouse ! Look there ! don't you see it? " " Yes, I see it. Do you really want that bird? " ^^ Want it} Of course I want it! Get my gun, quick, before it flies." " Oh, well, if you want it, I'll get it for you," said Mack. Dismounting, he picked up a small club, threw it at the bird, at very short range, and hit the mark. The bird fell dead; whereupon Mack calmly picked it up, and handed it up to Mr. Monro, saying indifferently, " Here it is." " And," said Charlie, " you ought to have seen the disgusted look on Mr. Monro's face as he looked at Mack, and took that bird! " I skinned the finest male grouse of the bunch that Mr. Phillips shot. It was seventeen inches in total length, tip of beak to end of tail, with a wing-spread of twenty-four and one-half inches. Its crop contained a dessertspoonful of blueberries, eight blueberry leaves and six needles of the jack pine. The species could not be called plentiful in the region we traversed. From first to last we saw about thirty birds, always in green timber. About two hours before sunset we came to a level meadow of a hundred acres, heavily set in rank grass, and lying very low. Two hay-stacks towered aloft to a height of about seven feet, and from them it was evident that we were on the " ranch " of Wild-Cat Charlie, at the Sulphur Spring. We pulled up the steep ridge that bounded the meadow on the west, and went into camp IN THE VALLEY OF ELK RIVER 23 on its summit. Elk River flows by the western foot of the ridge, and across the meadow, half a mile eastward, is the already famous Sulphur Spring. If you don't know about the Spring, and sleep on the ridge with a strange man in your tent, and the wind blowing from the east, you will be horrified by the dis- covery (as Charlie ^mith once was) that the stranger is far on the way toward decomposition. On our day's journey up, we saw twenty bluebirds, a pigeon-hawk {Falco columbarius) and a golden eagle. CHAPTER III A GOLDEN DAY ON FORDING RIVER A Bath in the Sulphur Spring — A Ride to Fording River — Cut-Throat Trout galore — Josephine Falls — Evening over the Elk Valley. Reader, did you ever have a day of ideal trout-fishing, in a rushing mountain stream? I hope you have, for if so it leaves that much less to desire. It is good to have one fling at a fine thing, even though the day and the hour never return. In Elk River, below the Sulphur Spring there is no extra-fine fishing, for the reason that the accessibility of the stream has caused the biggest fish to disappear via the short line. So Charlie Smith planned that we should make a trip for trout over to Fording River, partly, as he phrased it, " to break the director in gradually, before we get into the high mountains." In New York I hunted long for rubber-bodied may-flies, and I carried a rod and reel twenty-five hundred miles for one day on Fording River; but that day was worth it! When we made camp on the ridge, the wind was easterly, and there poured across that meadow, and up over the ridge, a wave of sulphuretted hydrogen that plainly told us we had arrived at the Sulphur Spring. Forthwith Mr. Phillips bade me prepare to bathe, 24 A GOLDEN DAY ON FORDING RIVER 25 and follow him. To bathe in that awful hole was the regular thing to do; so we sadly tramped across the meadow to the foot of the mountain-ridge that rises from its eastern side; and there we found the Spring. At the edge of the grass lay a pale-green pool, eighty feet long, forty feet wide, and in the deepest place about twelve feet deep. The water was very clear, except where a metallic scum floated upon the surface, and the bottom looked like corroded copper. For a bath it was the most uncanny-looking proposition I ever encoun- tered; and I have bathed with alligators, gavials and sharks, more than once. The bottom looked most unsatis- factory; but being unable to make or to mend it, we dis- robed, — ^very slowly and reluctantly it seemed to me, — and prepared to take our medicine. It was necessary to cross one end of the pool, on two villainous saplings which tried hard to throw us down; and the sharp stones on the hinterland cut our bare feet most exquisitely. John bravely led the way into the hor- rid hole, and when I followed, the warmth of the water proved unexpectedly grateful and comforting. The tem- perature was about 72 degrees, except where the water streamed up out of the ground, and there it must have been about 90 degrees. In a few minutes we became hardened to the powerful yellow fumes which lay like a blanket on the surface of the pool, and then the bath became really enjoyable, — all but the bottom. The slime in which we stood, whenever we ceased to swim, was neither nice nor tidy, and so we swam as much as pos- sible. In the centre of the pool, where the water was 26 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES dark, and one could not see the bottom, I tried to meas- ure its depth, but found it far over my head. Already this spring is locally famous for its healing properties as applied to rheumatism. Close beside the pool, on the ridge side, stood a little seven-by-nine log cabin with a yawning fireplace at the farther end. Along the north side of the cabin extended a seven-foot trough, dug out of a big spruce log, with a cavity large enough to contain a man. This was the outfit of an old trapper who had been afflicted with rheumatism, and spent a winter here, treating himself with commendable dili- gence and hot sulphur water. When it was too cold to bathe in the pool he filled his log bath-tub with sulphur- water, heated it with hot stones from his fire, then got in and loafed and invited his soul at 90 degrees or more. A hundred feet farther south stood another and a bet- ter cabin in which my guide, philosopher and friend, Charlie Smith, lived for three months last spring while he cured his rheumatism, — at least temporarily. Some day in the near future, this spot will be ruined forever by the erection on the ridge of a modern Hot Springs Hotel, with electric lights, telephones, lobster salad and starched linen. Therefore I am glad that we have gambolled in the Sulphur Spring in all its primitive rawness, and that Mr. Phillips shot a coyote from the edge of it immediately after our bath. Our men came out from camp to carry in a deer, and had the disappoint- ment been caused by any one else than the patron saint of Elk River, uncanny things might have been said. Charlie Smith and Mack Norboe assured me that A GOLDEN DAY ON FORDING RIVER 27 when the wind is easterly, the odor of the Sulphur Spring can plainly be detected at the top of the mountain on the western side of Elk River, fully three miles away. From our camp in the Elk Valley, Fording River lies eastward, beyond a mountain and miles away. Mr. Phillips and Mack Norboe set out to walk to the fishing- place, in order to hunt on the way, for mule deer. We were to meet at noon at Josephine Falls. Charlie and I rode, in order to have horses on which to carry home the fish. We entered the meadow, and rode north the entire length of it, to where it terminates in a beautiful park- like tract of scattered spruces and pines. Then we climbed the easterly ridge, up through an open growth of more pines and spruces, birch and quaking asp, up and up, for at least a thousand feet. After a long ride on the ridge side and over its northern crest, v^^e entered an awful tangle of fallen timber and brush. We wound to and fro, up and down, to find a practicable route for the horses. That the faithful animals did not break their legs was a source of wonderment, and their skill in getting over tree-trunks without accident was really remarkable. At last we reached the edge of the plateau we had painfully crossed, and saw below us a deep and narrow valley, with a very steep pitch downward. On its far- ther side were shaly perpendicular bluffs, rising high. Fortunately the ground was soft, and we were able to ride down with little difficulty. The descent seemed endless, but we zigzagged lower and lower until at last 28 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES we reached the bushes and cobble-stones which indicated the bottom of the valley. At its widest, the valley was only about seventy-five feet wide, and about half of it was occupied by the swiftly racing stream. Three hundred yards above our landing- place, a cataract, about thirty feet high by fifty feet wide, poured a torrent of foam down a series of ragged steps worn in the edge of a thick bed of decomposing shale. The incline was about 60 degrees, and the volume of water churned itself into froth the moment it made its first plunge. On the south side of the falls the shale steps offer a very good footway to the top. This picturesque waterfall was discovered by Pro- fessor Henry F. Osborn and his family, only three weeks previous to our visit, and named in honor of Miss Jose- phine Osborn, a sweet maid in her teens, who caught the largest trout thus far recorded from that spot. During the two days' stay of the Osborn family in that romantic spot, they had the novel pleasure of feeding bread from their luncheon to a small flock of harlequin ducks that were disporting in the pool at the foot of the falls. There are two other falls a short distance above Josephine Falls, but we did not take time to visit them. But the fishing! Do not think, patient Reader, that we lost any time after our arrival in looking at scenery of any kind. It seemed to me, however, that many pre- cious moments were wasted in getting out our fly-books, and reels, and in putting things together. " Try a cast in there," said Charlie, indicating a section of the stream where the swift current was all Trout Fishing at Josephine Falls '/ . A ^^ GOLDEN DAY ON FORDING RIVER 29 crowded together at the farther side, and went rushing against the rock wall at the rate of ten miles an hour. I threw my fly upon the racing water, and let it ride downstream, bobbing up and down on the waves. The first cast went for nothing, but in the next, the fly had not ridden more than half-way down when there was a golden-yellow flash across the current, a rush, and a greedy pull on the line. "There! You've got one already!" cried Charlie. " Be careful, and don't let your line slacken! " The first trout! It was a thrilling moment. My blood seemed to be suddenly set back about twenty years. With every new tug on the end of the rod my fingers tingled as if I held the poles of an electric battery. It was a new thing to hook a big fish and see it, every instant. I was too anxious to land my first fish for any in- dulgence in exhibition play. The trout rushed in many directions, mostly upstream on the bias, or across, for I gave him no chance to run down. As he turned half over in rushing away from my side of the stream, the sun caught his golden side and lit it up gloriously. How fine he did look! With as little delay as possible I reeled him in and swung him shoreward until Charlie was able to reach out, and land him fairly upon the clean cobble-stones. He was a Cut-Throat Trout (Salmo clarkii) better named Black-Spotted Trout, but by people of this region known as " Dolly-Varden " Trout. The upper half of the body is of a pale golden-yellow color, dotted all over from 30 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES upper lip to tail tip with small elliptical black spots that stand vertically. The lower half of the body is suffused with a warm sunset glow of pinkish color, while the under surface is silvery white. The lower edge of each membrane covering the gills, under the head, looks as if a painter had given each side a stroke with a paint- brush charged with rose-madder, making a red V; and from this " effect," suggesting a cut throat, has come the gruesome English name by which this fish is known to the great majority of its acquaintances. The real Dolly- Varden Trout is a charr {Salvelinus parkei), closely related to the spotted brook-trout, with a much more pointed head, light spots instead of dark, and only one- fourth as many of them as the Cut-Throat. Both species, however, inhabit the mountain-streams of the Pacific slope from California and Montana to Alaska. But all this while we lost no time in moralizing over the exact scientific status and affinities of our first fish. From start to finish it was a wild revel. I soon became so set up with four or five big fish that I refused to engage any small fry. Whenever I saw a small fish dart toward my fly, I snatched it away from him, and angled for his betters. Whenever by any untoward accident a one-pound fish took the hook in spite of me, we landed him without loss of time, took the hook from his lip, and with an admonition never to do so any more until he got big, gently dropped him back home. The Cut-Throat Trout is, after all, a dainty biter. Although he takes an imitation may-fly swiftly, and even joyously, he does not greedily gulp it far down into his A GOLDEN DAY ON FORDING RIVER 31 anatomy, and make all kinds of trouble. He seizes with his lips only, not his throat; and almost invariably the hook is found holding feebly in his lip. This scanty hold requires much care in playing the fish, and a line con- stantly taut, to keep the hook in its place. With the least carelessness, away goes the fish. It also makes it easy to remove a fish that is too small, and put it back in the stream as good as new. One fly lasts a long time, and is good for at least three or four fish of approved size. While the fun was at its height, and we had five fine fish to the good, Mr. Phillips and Mack Norboe joined us, ready and eager for the fray. John quickly devel- oped his rod, reeved the line home and bent on a fly. With the first cast, above my fishing-place, he hooked and landed a fine fish, and in less than three minutes had landed four more! Then he paused, turned to his admiring audience with a guilty laugh, and exclaimed, " This is nothing but slaughter! " Truly it was. The fish struck as fast as he could throw in his line and haul them out. We both paused to consider, for every man in our party believed in the policy of stopping at " enough." We had ten fish, and our limit was forthwith fixed at fifteen for the two days that six men would be trying to consume them. We scrambled along the rocks up to Josephine Falls, and I determined to have a try in the boiling caldron at the foot of the cataract, to see if trout could see to take a fly in such white water. It was no trouble to get a good position on the shale steps close beside the foot of 32 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES the torrent, where the facilities for fly-casting were of the best. I threw into the caldron, many times, reaching every yard of its surface, but got only one really good fish. Then Mr. Phillips yelled to Charlie, and above the roar of the falls, Charlie passed it on to me. " He wants to take you taking out the fish ! Hold on a minute! " " Tell him to hurry! " The trout fought gamely, and never gave up for an instaht. John worked with his camera, and I with the fish, to hold my game for the desired moment, — but all the time fearing that it would get away. At last the expected happened. My line suddenly slackened, and communicated to my nerve-centres the sickening sensa- tion that when written out spells " lost! " A little later I hooked another and a smaller fish, and John fired when he was ready; but the result is not good to look upon. The fewer snap-shots that are made of a one-hundred-and-eighty-pound man, dressed decol- lete, who is really fishing or hunting, the better ; for they are apt to be the reverse of picturesque, and seldom show the victim to any advantage. For the Cut-Throat Trout the pool at the foot of Josephine Falls is the head of navigation. Charlie Smith says there are no trout above. I saw individuals trying to leap up the falls, but they did not rise more than four or five feet out of the water. It would take an Atlantic salmon eight feet long, with horse-power to match his size, to overleap that fall. The Pack-Train Leaving Sulphur Spring Camp A GOLDEN DAY ON FORDING RIVER 33 At one o'clock we camped on the bank, amid clean rocks and bushes, with an abundance of drinking-water close by, and ate our luncheon. Some one suggested broil- ing a couple of trout; and for appearance's sake I would like to record the fact that we did so. It would have been the regular thing to do; but I must tell the truth. The fact is, we were all too much overcome with the languor of lotus-eaters to do more than think about it. In other words, we were too lazy to clean the fish, and broil them properly. There was plenty of luncheon, the sunshine was gloriously inviting, the river was like a dream, its roar was soothing music, — and what more would you have ! After a quiet hour, we sprang up, eager for the re- mainder of our quota of fish. We tried the stream for " big ones," but from the falls down to the first still water we got not a single rise. The strife between us was not merely to catch fish, and land them, but to catch the biggest ones, only, and avoid hooking the small fry. We became quite expert in snatching our flies away from fish that were too small. Up to the fourteenth fish, Mr. Phillips was ahead of me on size ; but No. 1 5 came to my fly, and finally was landed in triumph. It measured eighteen inches, beat- ing John's largest by a whole eighth of an inch. Later on, however, I remembered that he did the measuring, and I will always have grave doubts about the actual exist- ence of that eighth. I fear the steel tape slipped in my favor. At all events, that fish weighed two pounds four ounces ; and we all joyously guessed far above its weight. It is needless to say that the flesh of the Cut-Throat 34 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES Trout, as we found it, is hard, juicy, and delicious. How could it be otherwise? It is a pity, however, that this fish is so easily taken, for gullibility in game always spells early disappearance. It would be better all around if the fish were more shy and persistent, for few men have the iron resolution to halt at the fifteenth or twentieth fish, and take the long trail back. In returning, there was no such thing as riding our horses up the terrific hill which led to the plateau. We scrambled up on foot, rest by rest, and were fairly glad to reach the top. Only an iron horse could carry a man or woman up that slope. As we rode home, the view over the valley of the Elk, and into the lofty mountains beyond, was fairly entranc- ing. The level valley, — it seemed level, from that lofty height, — ^was laid out in patterns of dense green timber, gray dead timber, and yellow-green meadow, with a sil- ver serpent of river winding gracefully to and fro. Be- yond all this a great bank of mountains loomed darkly into the evening sky. A smoky haze, which softened the outlines of both valley and mountain, was pierced at one point by a column of smoke from burning timber. Even while we looked with great enjoyment upon this fasci- nating and restful picture, we saw under the smoke the bright gleam of fire; and a moment later, a one-hundred- foot spruce-tree suddenly became enveloped in flames. The blaze quickly climbed to the top of the leafy spire, burned brightly for a minute, — a veritable pillar of fire, — then died down and glowed dully against the dark shadows that lay beyond. CHAPTER IV TRAVEL IN THE MOUNTAINS "House-Roof Mountains" — Making Up Packs — ^When Charlie Threw Down his Pack — ^Valley Thoroughfares — Green Timber — Down Timber — Trail-Cutting — Berries of the Mountains. In the matter of mountain travel, be it remembered that there are mountains and mountains. In some of them, valleys of comfortable width and openness are a kind of habit. Others have a bad way of bringing you up against the rocky nose of an overhanging cliff, and taking toll from your nerves or your muscles before your pack-train is safely by. In some, you are eternally fight- ing with timber, brush, and decaying moss-covered forest debris. By reason of its hot-house atmosphere and rains, I believe the mountains of Borneo are to the climber the most exhausting of all on earth. Some mountains seem morally upright and fair, while others, despite their heights, are actually mean. Some give the hunter a fair reward for much hard labor, but others tantalize him into wearing out his soul for naught. Think of seeing twenty-one bears in twenty days, without being able to get a shot at one ! (This by reason of snow- bent willows on the slides.) It is not all of hunting to kill game ; and why should one hunt in mean mountains, monotonous forests or water-soaked plains ! 35 26 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES In our little corner of British Columbia, the heights are of the kind which may best be described as house- roof mountains. They are cleanly cut, they rise very steeply and have very narrow valleys. Often they ter- minate at the top in sharp knife-edges, and fairly bristle with peaks and precipices. In them, travel by pack-train means creeping up or down the narrow valleys until a crossable divide is found. Travel on foot, especially in hunting, always means hard climbing, either up or down. In hunting, you climb up a long and steep acclivity, hop- ing for a restful table-land at the top, only to find the summit a chisel's edge terminating at either end against a sheer precipice. Usually the other side of every ridge is worse than the first, dropping down into a great basin, so fast and so far that you halt dismayed at the thought of going down to the bottom, and climbing back again before nightfall. With the Columbian Rockies, famil- iarity breeds anything but contempt. All the valleys that we saw in the mountains between the Elk and the Bull were very narrow, and difficult to traverse. Take a small postal card, bend it along the middle into a right angle, and you will have, if you set it up on the apex of the angle, a very fair representation in miniature of the mountain-slopes in the goat moun- tains, and the width of the valleys between them. There are many places where the valleys between high moun- tains are not over fifty feet wide at the bottom, and above that you work hard for every foot that you win. In nine miles out of every ten, the mountain-sides are so steep, or so badly enmeshed in down timber, that TRAVEL IN THE MOUNTAINS 37 horses cannot travel along them without exhausting labor. It is therefore a fixed line of action that when- ever a laden pack-train is seeking to cover distance it must stick to the bottoms of the valleys; and when it climbs a steep ascent, it is either to surmount a pass, or to avoid an obstruction. The ascent of Goat Creek to its source may well be taken as an example of travel by pack-train in the moun- tains of British Columbia. For farm wagons, the Sulphur Spring is at present the head of navigation, and on the morning after our day on Fording River our pack-train was regularly made up. In rugged mountains, the proper making up of the load for each horse is a matter which no packer can make light of. Charlie, Mack and John spent a long hour in overhauling our freight, weighing sections of it on my game-scales, and parcelling out the loads. They accepted " air-tights " nailed up in their original packages, with a cheerfulness that spoke volumes for their experience. I never before saw such an array of heavy wooden boxes put upon six horses with such supreme indifference. And I never before saw six packs made up and cinched with so little fuss. The work the horses did during the next four weeks in carrying those packs was really very severe, and to the credit of " the boys " I must record the fact that not once did a load cause trouble; not a single breakable object was broken; and above all, no horse was punished by a sore back. The foundation principle in making up packs is to class things according to their genera and species, and 38 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES make each load as homogeneous as possible. For in- stance, they did not load a horse with a bed-roll on one side and canned goods on the other. Dead weight on one side calls for similar weight on the other, and bulk demands bulk. The diamond hitch with its cutting ropes was not employed, every load being provided with broad girths made especially for packs. In making up a pack- train, Charlie Smith is a past master, but the Norboes also are very skilful at it. Just above our Sulphur Spring Camp, we passed the cabin of a lame and solitary but cheerful German rancher named Wild-Cat Charlie. When we passed his estab- lishment, he was absent, making hay; and on his cabin- door hung a large padlock. " Well," I said, " this is the first lock I have ever seen on a ranchman's door in the wild West." " Oh, pshaw! That's all bluff," Charlie Smith hast- ened to say. " He locks his door, because he is proud of having the only padlock in the Valley; but he tells everybody where he keeps the key. There it is, — on that nail." It is known that Wild-Cat Charlie is no great reader, and is wellnigh destitute of books and papers. Our men are constantly wondering what he thinks about, — or whether he thinks at all, — during the fearfully long win- ter evenings, as he sits by his fire and smokes. Although somewhat cranky, he is very hospitable, and many a half-frozen trapper has had occasion to bless the wel- coming hand and warm fireside to be found at " Wild- Cat Charlie's." Fording Elk River The trees on the bank are Jack pines. One spruce on the extreme right. TRAVEL IN THE MOUNTAINS 39 And this reminds me of the story our Charlie and Mack told me, jointly, of their forced march in the dead of winter, from Bull River, thirty miles over two ranges of mountains, and down Goat Creek through deep snow, all in one day. " That," said Charlie, " was the only time I ever threw down my pack; but I surely threw it down that night, and only two miles from the Dutchman's cabin. For the last two hours of that tramp I walked just like a wooden machine. I was all the time afraid I would fall down; for I knew that as sure as I did, I couldn't get up! Cold? It was forty below zero, and we hadn't had any too much to eat, either. At last I did throw away my pack, and when we finally got to Charlie's cabin, I was the worst played-out I ever was in my whole life. I couldn't have gone another mile, not to have saved my own life." For about three miles from Wild-Cat Charlie's cabin, along the west bank of the Elk, we jogged on northward at a rapid pace. At last we reached the mouth of a creek that came brawling down from the goat country. It was Goat Creek; and turning into its narrow valley, the climb to the summits began. In that country it is no uncommon thing for a moun- tain stream to drop at the rate of three hundred feet to the mile. Often the descent is even more than that. As a rule, you do not realize how much you are climbing until you reach the source of the trouble and start down. You climb up slowly, with constant meanderings, and cannot gauge the elevation gained ; but in coming down, 40 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES with your seven-league boots on, you can better judge of the situation as a whole. Near the end of the trip I was part of a striking illustration of this strange fact. Our first half-day's travel up that steep mountain- groove was spent chiefly on the northern slope. There were long stretches of " green timber," — which means living coniferous timber, green all the year round. In it the ground was covered with a velvet carpet of brown needles, and ornamented with a setting of thimbleberry bushes bearing bright crimson berries. There were thousands of slender, open-topped currant bushes bear- ing scattered clusters of jet-black currants, bitter to the taste but good to allay mouth-dryness and thirst. The trees are mostly the Canadian white spruce {Picea Engel- manni) and the jack pine, with a sprinkling of balsam, juniper, quaking asp and larch. Throughout that whole region the deciduous trees are so few that they are very inconspicuous, and those which do exist are mostly mere bushes. In the green timber the soft ground is very restful to feet that are dead tired from the ankle-strain of rugged slide-rock. The aroma of the coniferous foliage is both grateful and comforting, but the best hunting-grounds for large game animals are found elsewhere.' No won- der that in past years the Indians occasionally set fire to the forests, and burned out great areas in order to let in the sunlight, grow grass and create good feeding-grounds — and also hunting-grounds, — for hoofed animals. But the beautiful and all-embracing " green timber" has its habitants. Its resinous shadows envelop and shel- TRAVEL IN THE MOUNTAINS 41 ter the agile lynx, the sinister wolverine, the too-confiding marten, the prosy porcupine, the busy red squirrel, and an occasional wolf. The grizzly and the black bear are transient guests, but in times of real trouble, no wild creatures value green timber more than they. The elk and deer also find it a welcome retreat. One of the most impressive features of those moun- tains is the sharpness with which everything is deline- ated. The different elements which make up the face of Nature are not always softly and artistically blended together, as a skilful artist blends the color boundaries on his canvas. Each patch of green timber is as sharply defined at its edges as the grounds of a county fair. In one step you leave the glaring sunlight, and are swal- lowed up by the dark, restful shadows, just as when one steps from the glare and stress of a stone pavement into the soothing shadows of a cloister. By one step you make your exit, and land full upon the angular agonies of slide-rock, or into the horizontal terrors of " down timber." For a mile or more a creek will go brawling noisily over its bed of stones, and all at once drop entirely out of sight, under a great mass of slide-rock. Down the steep mountain-side, the track of each avalanche is cut as clean as the swath of a mower going through tall grass. Even timber-line itself is not half so long drawn out as one usually sees in other mountains. There is no diffi- culty in drawing a contour line to mark it out on your sketch. Throughout our mountains, there was no such thing as travelling by pack-train without a cut-out trail. The 42 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES down timber positively forbade it; and even in the ever- green tracts there were so many fallen trees that it was impossible to get on without the axe. Had we at any time lost both our axes, our horses would have been com- pelled to turn back and retrace their steps. A loaded pack-horse can step over any log that is not more than twenty-six inches from the ground, but before one exceeding that height, something else must be done. If it is a small log, the trail-cutter chops a three- foot section out of it, or cuts it in two in order that the top section may fall down. If it is a large trunk, the trail must go around it. A good mountain-horse can get over any log that he can step over with his forelegs, for with his forelegs well placed, he can successfully jump his hindlegs over. In bad down timber, like that of lower Avalanche Creek, a trail takes a course about like this, beside which chain lightning is ruler-straight: If anything will teach a man patience, a bad case of down timber will do so. There is no use in fretting over it; and swearing at it is the height of folly. The secret of such navigation lies in a calm determination to give the horse plenty of time, and " stay with it." To hurry your horses is to invite broken legs, — a thought which will promptly cool down the wildest impatience. Naturally, the laying out of a trail calls for a quick eye and good judgment in choosing the route which de- TRAVEL IN THE MOUNTAINS 43 mands the least chopping, and that does not tack too often nor too far. As the axe-man proceeds, he must mark the course between log-cuttings by lopping off a bush, or scalping the top of a log with a single sweep of his axe as he walks along, leaving a spot of clean, bright wood. Where conditions are not too severe, men like our four can chop out a trail with astonishing rapidity; but occasionally they encounter long stretches of down tim- ber that simply " break their hearts." In such places as lower Avalanche Creek, there is nothing to do but to camp and chop. In several creeks that we opened up to our pack- train, we found old Indian trails, some of which helped us very much. The first sign of such a trail is a large bush or a small sapling that has been cut down by many feeble blows. "Squaw hatchet I" or "Squaw work!" our guides often exclaimed, pointing to a stem that had been un- skilfully hacked down. A white man, with a sharp axe, cuts down with one or two clean blows a sapling that a squaw assaults a dozen times with her dull hatchet before it falls. A long stretch of slide-rock is always a hard road for a pack-train, unless a good trail has already been made across it. I will have more to say of slide-rock farther on, but in entering the mountains we encountered it, soon and plenty. I know of but one species of rock travel that is worse for a horse, and that is the slippery, rounded bowlders, big and little, that so often underlie 44 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES the fording-places of mountain rivers. They seem spe- cially designed to break horses' legs, and the only way to cheat them of their prey is by permitting the horse to creep along, feeling cautiously for each stepping-place. On slide-rock, the rocks are horribly angular, sharp- edge'd and cruel, and occasionally an unshod horse leaves a trail of blood behind him. But the train moves straight forward, even though its progress is slow; and fortu- nately one does not strike miles and miles of continuous slide-rock. In travelling by pack-train through rough country, much time is lost by deploying to pass obstructions. On Goat Creek we sometimes climbed from two hundred to four hundred feet up the steep mountain in order to pass above a sheer bluff, and immediately after would lose all our altitude by being forced to drop back to the bot- tom of the valley. When thoroughly tired, such diver- sions, in climbing up only to climb down again, seem a sinful waste of horse-power. Beyond the first half-day's travel up Goat Creek, there was no trail, and Charlie and the Norboes had to cut one the remainder of the way to the summit. Mr. Phillips and I elected to go ahead of the outfit, hunting on foot, and reach the camping-place on Goat Pass about the same time as the others. At the point where we were to leave Smith and his axe, we halted to rest, and as we looked about for places to sit down, Charlie exclaimed, " Here are some red raspberries, all ripe and ready for ye!" o o TRAVEL IN THE MOUNTAINS 45 It was indeed true. Over a space as large as a New York City lot, there grew a scattering cover of bushes a foot high, bearing red raspberries, fully ripe, and de- licious. We flung ourselves upon them, and feasted. I like to hunt in a country that contains something in the form of fruit, nuts or berries that a hungry man can eat. In the tropics it is seldom indeed that one finds in a for- est any of these wilderness luxuries. The traveller who cannot live by his gun or rod must carry his food with him, or starve. Beside the poverty-stricken tropical for- ests, the forests of the temperate zone are rich in things edible to man. Now when Charlie and I went on that side hunt and discovered Josephine Lake, we found a whole mountain-side covered with delicious huckle- berries, of three species, upon which we gratefully fed. Had there been a grizzly bear " among those present," he would have stood aghast at the havoc we wrought. CHAPTER V THE MOUNTAIN GOAT AT HOME Our Welcome to Goatland — Three Goats Stampede through our Camp — A Wild Spot — Mountain Color on a Gray Day — An Early- Morning Caller — Goats at Rest — How Goats Climb — Stalking Two Big Billies — Two Goats Killed — Measurements and Weight. John Phillips and I were scrambling along the steep and rough eastern face of Bald Mountain, a few yards below timber-line, half-way up 'twixt creek and summit. He was light of weight, well-seasoned and nimble-footed; I was heavy, ill-conditioned, and hungry for more air. Between the slide-rock, down timber and brush, the going had been undeniably bad, and in spite of numerous rests I was almost fagged. Far below us, at the bottom of the V-shaped valley, the horse-bell faintly tinkled, and as Mack and Charlie whacked out the trail, the pack-train crept forward. We were thankful that the camping-place, on Goat Pass, was only a mile beyond. Presently we heard a voice faintly shouting to us from below. " Look above you, — at the goats \ " Hastily we moved out of a brush-patch, and looked aloft. At the top of the precipice that rose above our slope, a long, irregular line of living forms perched 46 THE MOUNTAIN GOAT AT HOME 47 absurdly on the sky-line, and looked over the edge, at us. Quickly we brought our glasses to bear, and counted fourteen living and v^ild Rocky Mountain goats. " All nannies, young billies, and kids," said Mr. Phillips. " They are trying to guess what kind of wild animals we are." I noticed that he was quite calm ; but I felt various things which seemed to sum themselves up in the formula, — " the Rocky Mountain goat, — at last\" For fully ten minutes, the entire fourteen white. ones steadfastly gazed down upon us, with but few changes of position, and few remarks. Finally, one by one they drew back from the edge of the precipice, and quietly drifted away over the bald crest of the mountain. For twenty years I had been reading the scanty scraps of mountain-goat literature that at long intervals have appeared in print. I had seen seven specimens alive in captivity, and helped to care for four of them. With a firm belief that the game was worth it, I had travelled twenty-five hundred miles or more in order to meet this strange animal in its own home, and cultivate a close acquaintance with half a dozen wild flocks. At three o'clock we camped at timber-line, on a high and difficult pass between the Elk River and the Bull. That night we christened the ridge Goat Pass. While the guides and the cook unpacked the outfit and pitched the tents, Mr. Phillips hurried down the western side of the divide. Fifteen minutes later he and Kaiser, — in my opinion the wisest hunting-dog in British Columbia, — had twenty-eight nanny goats and kids at bay on the top 48 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES of a precipice, and were photographing them at the risk of their lives. Rifle and glass in hand, I sat down on a little knoll a few yards above the tents, to watch a lame billy goat who was quietly grazing and limping along the side of a lofty ridge that came down east of us from Phillips Peak. A lame wild animal in a country wherein a shot had not been fired for five years, was, to all of us, a real novelty; and with my glasses I watched that goat long and well. It was his left foreleg that was lame, and it was the opinion of the party that the old fellow was suffering from an accident received on the rocks. Pos- sibly a stone had been rolled down upon him, by another goat. Suddenly sharp cries of surprise came up from the camp, and I sprang up to look about. Three goats were running past the tents at top speed, — a big billy, and two smaller goats. "Hi, there! Goats! Goats!" cried Smith and Norboe. The cook was stooping over the fire, and looking under his right arm he saw the bunch charging straight toward him, at a gallop. A second later, the big billy was almost upon him. " Hey! You son-of-a-gun! " yelled Huddleston, and as the big snow-white animal dashed past him he struck it across the neck with a stick of firewood. The goat's tracks were within six feet of the camp-fire. The billy ran straight through the camp, then swung sharply to the left, and the last I saw of him was his THE MOUNTAIN GOAT AT HOME 49 humpy hindquarters wildly bobbing up and down among the dead jack pines, as he ran for Bald Mountain. The two smaller goats held their course, and one promptly disappeared. The other leaped across our water-hole, and as it scrambled out of the gully near my position, and paused for a few seconds to look back- ward, instinctively I covered it with my rifle. But only for an instant. " Come as they may," thought I, " my first goat shall not be a small one!" And as the goat turned and raced on up, my .303 Savage came down. We laughed long at the utter absurdity of three wild goats actually breaking into the privacy of our camp, on our first afternoon in Goatland. In the Elk Valley Charlie Smith had promised me that we would camp " right among the goats," and he had royally kept his word. At evening, when we gathered round the camp-fire, and counted up, we found that on our first day in Goat- land, we had seen a total of fifty-three goats ; and no one had fired a shot. As for myself, I felt quite set up over my presence of mind in not firing at the goat which I had " dead to rights " after it had invaded our camp, and which might have been killed as a measure of self- defence. Our camp was pitched in a most commanding and awe-inspiring spot. We were precisely at timber-line, in a grassy hollow on the lowest summit between Bald and Bird Mountains, on the north, and Phillips Peak, on the south. From our tents the ground rose for sev- eral hundred feet, like the cables of the Brooklyn Bridge, 50 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES until it stopped against a rock wall which went on up several hundred feet more. In a notch quite near us was a big bank of eternal ice. In that country, such things are called glaciers; and its melting foot was the starting-point of Goat Creek. Fifty paces taken east- ward from our tents brought us to a projecting point from which we looked down a hundred feet to a rope of white water, and on down Goat Creek as it drops five hundred feet to the mile, to the point where it turns a sharp corner to the right, and disappears. Westward of camp, after climbing up a hundred feet or so, through dead standing timber, the ridge slopes steeply down for a mile and a half to the bottom of a great basin half filled with green timber, that opens toward Bull River. It was on this slope, at a point where a wall of rock cropped out, that Mr. Phillips cornered his flock of goats and photographed them. At our camp, water and wood were abundant; there was plenty of fine grass for our horses, spruce boughs for our beds, scenery for millions, and what more could we ask? The day following our arrival on Goat Pass was dull and rainy, with a little snow, and we all remained in camp. At intervals, some one would stroll out to our lookout point above Goat Creek, and eye-search the valley below " to see if an old silver-tip could come a-moochin' up, by accident," as Guide Smith quaintly phrased it. That gray day taught me something of color values in those mountains. As seen from our lookout point, the THE MOUNTAIN GOAT AT HOME 51 long, even stretch of house-roof mountain-slope on the farther side of Goat Creek was a revelation. In the full sunlight of a clear day, its tints were nothing to com- mand particular attention. Strong light seemed to take the colors out of everything. But a cloudy day, with a little rain on the face of nature, was like new varnish on an old oil-painting. During the forenoon, fleecy white clouds chased each other over the pass and through our camp, and for much of the time the Goat Creek gorge was cloud-filled. At last, however, about noon, they rose and drifted away, and then the mountain opposite revealed a color pattern that was exquisitely beautiful. For a distance of a thousand yards the ridge-side stretched away down the valley, straight and even; and in that distance it was furrowed from top to bottom by ten or twelve gullies, and ribbed by an equal number of ridges. At the bottom of the gorge was a dense green fringe of tall, obelisk spruces, very much alive. In many places, ghostly processions of dead spruces, limbless and gray, forlornly climbed the ridges, until half-way up the highest stragglers stopped. Intermixed with these tall poles were patches of trailing juniper of a dark olive- green color, growing tightly to the steep slope. The apex of each timbered ridge was covered with a solid mass of great willow-herb or " fireweed " {Cha- maenerion angustifolium) , then in its brightest autumn tints of purple and red. The brilliant patches of color which they painted on the mountain-side would have rejoiced the heart of an artist. This glorious plant 52 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES colored nearly every mountain-side in that region during our September there. Below the fireweed, the ridges were dotted with small, cone-shaped spruces, and trailing junipers {Juni- perus prostrata), of the densest and richest green. The grassy sides of the gullies were all pale yellow-green, softly blended at the edges with the darker colors that framed them in. At the bottom of each washout was a mass of light-gray slide-rock, and above all this rare pat- tern of soft colors loomed a lofty wall of naked carbon- iferous limestone rock, gray, grim and forbidding. It seemed to me that I never elsewhere had seen mountains so rich in colors as the ranges between the Elk and the Bull in that particular September. The rain and the drifting clouds were with us for one day only. Very early on the second morning, while Mr. Phillips and I lay in our sleeping-bags considering the grave question of getting or not getting up. Mack Norboe's voice was heard outside, speaking low 'but to the point: " Director, here's an old billy goat, lying right above our camp! " It was like twelve hundred volts. We tumbled out of our bags, slipped on our shoes, and ran out. Sure enough, a full-grown male goat was lying on the crest of the divide that led up to the summit of Bald Moun- tain, seventy-five feet above us, and not more than two hundred and fifty yards away. The shooting of him was left to me. I think I could have bagged that animal as he lay; The Size of a Mountain Goat The author's specimen, after falling loo feet, and rolling 200 feet on the slide-rock. THE MOUNTAIN GOAT AT HOME 53 but what would there have been in that of any interest to a sportsman? I had not asked any goats to come down to our camp, and lie down to be shotl Not caring greatly whether I got that goat or not, I attempted a stalk, along the western side of the ridge, through the dead timber, and well below him. But the old fellow was not half so sleepy as he looked. When finally I came up to a point that was supposed to com- mand his works, I found that he had winded me. He had vanished from his resting-place, and was already far up the side of Bald Mountain, conducting a masterly retreat. After a hurried breakfast, we made ready for a day with the goats on the northern mountains. Although there are many things in favor of small parties, — the best consisting of one guide and one hunter, — ^we all went together, — Mr, Phillips, Mack, Charlie and I. Our leader declared a determination to " see the director shoot his first goat " ; and I assured the others that the services of all would be needed in carrying home my spoils. As we turned back toward camp, and took time to look " at the sceneries," the view westward, toward Bull River, disclosed a cloud effect so beautiful that Mr. Phillips insisted upon photographing it, then and there. To give the " touch of life " which he always demanded, I sat in, as usual. By Mr. Phillips's advice, I put on suspenders and loosened my cartridge-belt, in order to breathe with per- fect freedom. We wore no leggings. Our shoes were 54 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES heavily hobnailed, and while I had thought mine as light as one dared use in that region of ragged rocks, I found that for cliff-climbing they were too heavy, and too stiff in the soles. Of course knee-breeches are the thing, but they should be so well cut that in steep climbing they will not drag on the knees, and waste the climber's horse-power; and there should be a generous opening at the knee. In those mountains, four things, and only four, are positively indispensable to every party, — rifles, axes, field- glasses and blankets. Each member of our hunting party carried a good glass, and never stirred from camp without it. For myself, I tried an experiment. Two months previously Mrs. Hornaday selected for me, in Paris, a very good opera-glass, made by Lemaire, with a field that was delightfully large and clear. While not quite so powerful a magnifier as the strongest binoculars now on the market, its field was so much clearer that I thought I would prefer it. It was much smaller than any regulation field-glass, and I carried it either in a pocket of my trousers, or loose inside my hunting-shirt, quite forgetful of its weight. It proved a great success. We found much interest in testing it with binoculars five times as costly, and the universal verdict was that it would reveal an animal as far as a hunter could go to it, and find it. I mention this because in climbing I found it well worth while to be free from a dangling leather case that is always in the way, and often is too large for comfort. From our camp we went north, along the top of the THE MOUNTAIN GOAT AT HOME 55 eastern wall of Bald Mountain. Two miles from home we topped a sharp rise, and there directly ahead, and only a quarter of a mile away on an eastern slope lay a band of eleven goats, basking in the welcome sunshine. The flock was composed of nannies, yearling billies and kids, with not even one old billy among those present. Two old chaperons lay with their heads well up, on the lookout, but all the others lay full length upon the grass, with their backs uphill. Three of the small kids lay close against their mothers. They were on the northerly point of a fine mountain meadow, with safety rocks on three sides. Just beyond them lay a ragged hogback of rock, both sides of which were so precipitous that no man save an experienced mountaineer would venture far upon it. It was to this rugged fortress that the goats promptly retreated for safety when we left off watching them, and rose from our concealment. Their sunning-ground looked like a sheep-yard, and we saw that goats had many times lain upon that spot. Near by, behind a living windbreak, was a goat- bed, that looked as if goats had lain in it five hundred times. By some curious circumstance, a dozen stunted spruces had woven themselves together, as if for mutual support, until they formed a tight evergreen wall ten feet long and eight feet high. It ranged north and south, forming an excellent hedge-like shield from easterly winds, while the steep mountain partially cut off the winds from the west. On the upper side of that natural windbreak, the turf had been worn into dust, and the S6 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES droppings were several inches deep. Apparently it was liked because it was a good shelter, in the centre of a fine sky-pasture, and within a few jumps of ideal safety rocks. From the spot where the goats had lain, looking ahead and to our left, we beheld a new mountain. Later on we christened it Bird Mountain, because of the flocks of ptarmigan we found upon its summit. Near its sum- mit we saw five more goats, all females and kids. At our feet lay a deep, rich-looking basin, then a low ridge, another basin with a lakelet in it, and beyond that an- other ridge, much higher than the first. Ridge No. 2 had dead timber upon it, but it was very scattering, for it was timber-line ; and its upper end snugged up against the eastern wall of Bird Mountain. Later on we found that the northern side of that ridge ended in a wall of rock that was scalable by man in one place only. "Yonder are two big old billies!" said some one with a glass in action. "Yes sir; there they are; all alone, and heading this way, too. Those are your goats this time. Director, sure enough." " Now boys," said I, " if we can stalk those two goats successfully, and bag them both, neatly and in quick time, we can call it genuine goat-hunting! " They were distant about a mile and a half, jogging along down a rocky hill, through a perfect maze of gullies, ridges, grass-plots and rocks, one of them keep- ing from forty to fifty feet behind the other. Even at that distance they looked big, and very, very THE MOUNTAIN GOAT AT HOME 57 white. Clearly, they were heading for Bird Mountain. We planned to meet them wherever they struck the pre- cipitous side of the mountain ahead of us, and at once began our stalk. From the basin which contained the little two-acre tarn, the rocky wall of Bird Mountain rose almost per- pendicularly for about eight hundred feet. As we were passing between the lake and the cliff, we heard bits of loose rock clattering down. "Just look yonder!" said Mr. Phillips, with much fervor. Close at hand, and well within fair rifle-shot, were four goats climbing the wall ; and two more were at the top, looking down as if deeply interested. The climbers had been caught napping, and being afraid to retreat either to right or left, they had elected to seek safety by climbing straight up! It was a glorious opportunity to see goats climb in a difficult place, and forthwith we halted and watched as long as the event lasted, utterly oblivious of our two big billies. Our binoculars brought them down to us wonderfully well, and we saw them as much in detail as if we had been looking a hundred feet with the unaided eye. The wall was a little rough, but the angle of it seemed not more than 10 degrees from perpendicular. The footholds were merely narrow edges of rock, and knobs the size of a man's fist. Each goat went up in a generally straight course, climbing slowly and carefully all the while. Each one chose its own course, and paid no attention to those that had gone before. The eyes 58 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES looked ahead to select the route, and the front hoofs skil- fully sought for footholds. It seemed as if the powerful front legs performed three-fourths of the work, reach- ing up until a good foothold was secured, then lifting the heavy body by main strength, while the hindlegs " also ran." It seemed that the chief function of the hind limbs was to keep what the forelegs won. As an exhibition of strength of limb, combined with sure- footedness and nerve, it was marvellous, no less. Often a goat would reach toward one side for a new foothold, find none, then rear up and pivot on its hind- feet, with its neck and stomach pressed against the wall, over to the other side. Occasionally a goat would be obliged to edge ofif five or ten feet to one side in order to scramble on up. From first to last, no goat slipped and no rocks gave way under their feet, although nu- merous bits of loose slide-rock were disturbed and sent rattling down. It was a most inspiring sight, and we watched it with breathless interest. In about ten minutes the four goats had by sheer strength and skill climbed about two hun- dred feet of the most precipitous portion of the cliff, and reached easy going. After that they went on up twice as rapidly as before, and soon passed over the summit, out of our sight. Then we compared notes. Mr. Phillips and I are of the opinion that nothing could have induced mountain sheep to have made that appalling climb, either in the presence of danger or otherwise. Since that day we have found that there are many mountain hunters who believe that as a straight- Weighing Mountain Goat No. i, by Sections The two goats were first seen on the thinly timbered ridge in the middle distance. THE MOUNTAIN GOAT AT HOME 59 away cliff-climber, the goat does things that are impos- sible to sheep. As soon as the goat-climbing exhibition had ended, we hurried on across the basin, and up the side of Ridge No. 2. This ridge bore a thin sprinkling of low spruces, a little fallen timber, much purple fireweed and some good grass. As seen at a little distance, it was a purple ridge. The western end of it snugged up against the mountain, and it was there that we met our two big billy goats. They had climbed nearly to the top of our ridge, close up to the mountain, and when we first sighted them they were beginning to feed upon a lace-leaved anemone {Pulsatilla occidentalts), at the edge of their newly found pasture. We worked toward them, behind a small clump of half-dead spruces, and finally halted to wait for them to come within range. After years of waiting, Rocky Mountain goats, at last ! How amazingly white and soft they look ; and how big they are! The high shoulder hump, the big, round barrel of the body, and the knee-breeches on the legs make the bulk of the animal seem enormous. The white- ness of " the driven snow," of cotton and' of paper seem by no means to surpass the incomparable white of those soft, fluffy-coated animals as they appear in a setting of hard, gray limestone, rugged slide-rock and daxk-green vegetation. They impressed me as being the whitest liv- ing objects I ever beheld, and far larger than I had ex- pected to find them. In reality, their color had the effect of magnifying their size; for they looked as big as two-year-old buffaloes. 6o CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES Of course only Mr. Phillips and I carried rifles; and we agreed that the left man should take the left animal. " It's a hundred and fifty yards!" said Mack Nor- boe, in a hoarse whisper. My goat was grazing behind the trunk of a fallen tree, which shielded his entire body. I waited, and waited; and there he stood, with his head down, and calmly cropped until I became wildly impatient. I think he stood in one spot for five minutes, feeding upon Pulsatilla. " Why don't you shoot? " queried Phillips, in wonder. " I can't! My goat's hiding behind a tree." " Well, fire when you're ready, Gridley, and I'll shoot when you do! " It must have been five minutes, but it seemed like twenty-five, before that goat began to feel a thrill of life along his keel, and move forward. The annoying sus- pense had actually made me unsteady; besides which, my Savage was a new one, and unchristened. Later on I found that the sights were not right for me, and that my first shooting was very poor. At last my goat stood forth, in full view, — ^white, immaculate, high of hump, low of head, big and bulky. I fired for the vitals behind shoulder. "You've overshot!" exclaimed Norboe, and " Bang! " said Mr. Phillips's Winchester. Neither of us brought down our goat at the first fire! I fired again, holding much lower, and the goat reared up a foot. Mr. Phillips fired again, whereupon THE MOUNTAIN GOAT AT HOME 6l his goat fell over like a sack of oats, and went rolling down the hill. My goat turned to run, and as he did so I sent two more shots after him. Then he disappeared behind some rocks. Mack, John and I ran forward, to keep him in sight, and fire more shots if necessary. But no goat was to be seen. " He can't get away! " said Norboe, reassuringly. " He's deadl " said I, by way of an outrageous bluff. "You'll find him down on the slide-rock!" But in- wardly I was torn by doubts. We hurried down the steep incline, and presently came to the top of a naked wall of rock. Below that was a wide expanse of slide-rock. " Thar he is ! " cried Norboe. " Away down yonder, out on the slide-rock, dead as a wedge." From where he stood when I fired, the goat had run back about two hundred feet, where he fell dead, and then began to roll. We traced him by a copious stream of blood on the rocks. He fell down the rock wall, for a hundred feet, in a slanting direction, and then — to my great astonishment — he rolled two hundred feet farther (by measurement) on that ragged, jagged slide-rock be- fore he fetched up against a particularly large chunk of stone, and stopped. We expected to find his horns broken, but they were quite uninjured. The most dam- age had been inflicted upon his nose, which was badly cut and bruised. The bullet that ended his life (my sec- ond shot) went squarely through the valves of his heart; but I regret to add that one thigh-bone had been broken by another shot, as he ran from me. 62 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES Mr. Phillips's goat behaved better than mine. It rolled down the grassy slope, and lodged on a treacher- ous little shelf of earth that overhung the very brink of the precipice. One step into that innocent-look- ing fringe of green juniper bushes meant death on the slide-rock below; and it made me nervous to see Mack and Charlie stand there while they skinned the ani- mal. As soon as possible we found the only practicable route down the rock wall, and scrambled down. The others say that I slid down the last twenty feet; but that is quite immaterial. I reached the goat a few paces in advance of the others, and thought to divert my follow- ers by reciting a celebrated quotation beginning, " To a hunter, the moment of triumph," etc. As I laid my hand upon the goat's hairy side and said my little piece, I heard a deadly " click." " Got him! " cried Mr. Phillips; and then three men and a dog laughed loud and derisively. Since seeing the picture I have altered that quotation, to this : "To a hunter, the moment of humiliation is when he first sees his idiotic smile on a surreptitious plate." It is inserted solely to oblige Mr. Phillips, as evidence of the occasion when he got ahead of me. The others declared that the goat was " a big one, though not the very biggest they ever grow." Forthwith we measured him; and in taking his height we shoved his foreleg up until the elbow came to the position it occupies under the standing, living animal. The meas- urements were as follows : "The Moment of Triumph " — Caught Unawares THE MOUNTAIN GOAT AT HOME 63 ROCKY MOUNTAIN GOAT Oreamnos montanus Male, six years old. Killed September 8, British Columbia 905, near the Bull River, Inches 38 59 25 3-5° 55 58 18 11.25 14 9-75 5 5.60 10.50 7-75 10.50 7 15 Standing height at shoulder Length, nose to root of tail Length of tail vertebrae . Girth behind foreleg Girth around abdomen Girth of neck behind ears (unskinned) Circumference of forearm, skinned Width of chest .... Length of horn on curve . Spread of horns at tips Circumference of horn at base Circumference of front hoof . Circumference of rear hoof Base of ear to end of nostrils . Front corner of eye to" rear corner nostril opening Widest spread of ears, tip to tip . Total weight of animal by scales, allovying 8 lbs. for blood lost 258 lbs. The black and naked glands in the skin behind the horn were on that date small, and inconspicuous; but they stood on edge, with the naked face of each closely pressed against the base of the horn in front of it. On another occasion I shot a thin old goat that stood forty-two inches high at the shoulders, and Mr. Phillips shot another that weighed two hundred and seventy- six pounds. After we had thoroughly dissected my goat, weighed it, examined the contents of its stomach, and saved a good sample of its food for close examination at camp, we tied up the hindquarters, head and pelt, and set out for camp. 64 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES And thus ended our first day in the actual hunting of mountain goats, in the course of which we saw a total of forty-two animals. The stalking, killing and dissect- ing of our two goats was very interesting, but the greatest event of the day was our opportunity to watch those five goats climb an almost perpendicular cliff. CHAPTER VI ON BIRD MOUNTAIN : PHOTOGRAPHING MOUNTAIN SHEEP A Mountain Cyclorama — The Continental Divide — Phillips Peak — A Land Unmapped and Unmeasured — Mountain Altitudes along Elk River — Statement by Geologist McEvoy — Mountain Sheep Afoot — Photographing Two Sheep on the Goat Rocks — Sheep and Goats Seen at the Same Moment. ON BIRD MOUNTAIN We reserved for the fourth day of our stay at Goat Pass a treat which was like dessert after meat. We climbed to a mountain-top for a general survey of our domain. Of the region in which we were, Phillips Peak is the highest mountain ; but its northern and western faces are unscalable, and its southern slope too far away. Near at hand, and excellent as a lookout, was the bald crest of Bird Mountain, and to it we climbed, on a glorious afternoon of alternating sunshine and cloud. The top of Bald Mountain, beside our camp, con- sists of fine, decomposed shale, and the goat-trail over it is wide and deep. Stepping from its soft side to the steep slope of Bird Mountain is like going from an ash- pile to a hill of hair mattresses. The zone between timber-line and summit is thickly carpeted with a soft, springy, mosslike ground-plant called mountain avens 6s 66 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES {Dryas octopetala), which to tired feet is most soothing and restful. In places the surface of the slope forms a long series of level benches a yard wide and five or six feet long, each one generously cushioned with this odd plant. Climbing a mountain over such footing as that is like exploring a wilderness in a Pullman car. But mark the contrast. From this zone of living carpet we climbed upon the terminal cap of the mountain, a huge mound of broken, sharp-edged rock, ragged, jagged, and barren of all vegetable life. It was the remains of a prehistoric peak, which foot by foot had remorselessly been torn down by wind and sun, frost and rain, until its last pin- nacle had been laid low. The whole mountain-top was a mass of clean rock — carboniferous limestone the color of a postal card, — that looked as if it had just come from a quarry, suitably broken for rubble-masonry foundations. The view from that rocky summit disclosed a mag- nificent mountain-cyclorama. In every direction, to the uttermost limit of vision, there rose and fell a bewilder- ing succession of saw-tooth mountains, deep valleys and far-distant peaks. The level mountain-plateau feature was totally absent. Nowhere was there visible a level spot large enough for a foot-ball field. It was moun- tains, mountains, everywhere, a labyrinth of steeps, a be- wildering maze of summits, valleys, precipices, basins and passes. Looking eastward over the northern spurs of Phil- lips Peak, across the valley of Elk River and beyond ON BIRD MOUNTAIN 67 Sheep Mountain, we saw, about thirty miles away, a long line of lofty snow-clad peaks, much higher than any of the intervening summits. They marked the crest of the great Continental Divide, and the boundary be- tween British Columbia and Alberta. Our distance from the United States boundary was about seventy miles. South-eastward, and very near at hand, rose the sharp cone of Phillips Peak, the culmination and hub of every- thing in the region round about. From its precipitous sides spring at least five small mountain-chains, which radiate like the spokes of a wheel. Mr. Phillips's fine photograph of his namesake renders a feeble word- description quite unnecessary. Although the northern and western faces of the upper five hundred feet of the peak are so appallingly steep that only a mountain goat could scale them, we found later on that the southern face is apparently accessible. I longed to stand on that summit, and with two months in the mountains I would gladly have made the attempt to do so ; but as matters stood, the many interesting things zoological that lay before us quite crowded out the idea of a well-considered attempt to make the climb during that trip. On his next visit Mr. Phillips will undoubt- edly write his name on the top of his peak. The moral uplift, and the corresponding ego depres- sion, of such a mountain-cyclorama as circles around the summit of Bird Mountain cannot adequately be por- trayed by me in words. I never before felt quite so puny or so wholly insignificant as then. I have seen other mountains in plenty, but nowhere else have I felt 68 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES so overwhelmingly impressed as by that particular two thousand square miles of heaving mountain-billows and deep-plunging valleys in view from Bird Mountain. And think what it must be from the top of Phillips Peak, on a clear day in September! Down to this date, the region north and north-west of Michel, for a radius of perhaps fifty miles, has never been touched by aneroid or surveyor's chain. We can give no heights nor distances with mechanical accuracy. Above Michel there is not a datum point of any kind. Naturally, however, we were much interested in the heights of the mountain summits in the region we vis- ited, between the Elk and Bull Rivers. Our estimates of the height of Phillips Peak, and other points in the mountains surrounding it, were based on the following memoranda which were kindly supplied by Mr. James McEvoy, Geologist of the Crow's Nest Pass Coal Com- pany: — " I have not the exact figures for the elevation of the Elk River at Wild-Cat Charlie's ranch, but it must be very close to 3,900 feet above sea-level." " The elevations of the mountains near Fernie on the east side of the river are about 7,000 feet. These moun- tains are of cretaceous coal-bearing rocks. On the west side of the Elk River at Fernie the mountains are com- posed of Carboniferous and Devonian limestone, and quartzites, reaching elevations of from 9,000 to 10,000 feet. The average height of the summits would be about 9,200 feet. These summits stand about four miles back from the river. Lower hills and spurs of these come ON BIRD MOUNTAIN 69 closer to the river, and will average about 7,000 feet elevation." " Farther up the Elk River, on the east side, in the neighborhood of Sparwood, the elevations are the same as near Fernie. On the west side, however, the moun- tains reach a higher elevation, probably 10,500 feet above the sea, and the distance of the summits from the Elk River is increased to about ten miles. North of the mouth of Michel Creek I cannot give you any close fig- ures for the elevation. The valley of the river for the most part is occupied by a narrow band of cretaceous rocks, and the mountains on either side, at least the higher ones, are composed of Carboniferous and De- vonian. On the west side of the river, from what I could see of the mountains, they seem to increase in elevation as you go northward, and on the east side the lower hills, which are composed of cretaceous rocks, seem to dwindle into insignificance." Judging from the facts stated above by Mr. McEvoy, we estimated the height of Phillips Peak at about 10,000 feet, and the average elevation of timber-line at 8,500 feet. We think that the goats we found and shot high up on the south-western side of the peak were feeding at a height of about 9,000 feet. Even on the rugged and forbidding summit of Bird Mountain, we found bird life. While Mr. Phillips was busily manoeuvring for mountain photographs, stagger- ing over the cruel rocks, camera in hand, a flock of willow ptarmigans flew up almost from under his feet, crying " cluck-cluck-cluck-cluck." Their snow-white yo CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES wings and tails flashed and fluttered for a hundred yards, then dropped among the stones. Instantly the mountain views were forgotten, and there began a long series of manoeuvres to photograph the birds. Mack Norboe was detailed to herd the birds, and hold them from stamped- ing while the camera man worked within close range. Shot after shot was made, sometimes at fifteen feet, and at least ten times the birds flew because they were too closely pressed. The difficulty lay in the bad light, and the inability of the camera to differentiate the bodies of the birds from the stones. The pictures were not successful, and in lieu of them Mr. Phillips offers a photograph of a single female ptarmigan, in summer plumage, herded by Mr. G. N. Monro, at a distance of about five feet. PHOTOGRAPHING MOUNTAIN SHEEP I shall always remember the date, — September ii, — because that date once was the wedding-day of a Lady whom I know. We had decided to leave Goat Pass on that day, move southward about ten miles, and make a new camp in the picturesque valley of Avalanche Creek. In order to lose no sportsman's opportunity, it was decided that Mr. Phillips, Charlie, and I should go ahead on foot, hunting by the way, and that the others should follow on with the pack-train, as soon as it could be made ready. For the second time in my hunting experience, a strange coincidence was brought about by the desire of a brother sportsman to show me the exact spot whereon B I a < .sp a e 2 o PHOTOGRAPHING MOUNTAIN SHEEP 71 a strange thing had happened to him. As we shoul- dered our rifles and climbed the hill south of our tents, Mr. Phillips said, " Now, Director, if you will come with me, I will show you where I corralled those goats and photographed them, the day we arrived here." I had previously expressed a desire to examine the spot, in order to see where the goats had stood at bay and unwillingly leaped down. We soon topped the crest of the ridge, and started down the long and steep western slope which constitutes the Bull River side of the divide. We were just below timber-line, and the mountain-side was thinly covered with stunted white spruces, half of them dead. Far below us lay a deep, round basin, like a gigantic wash- bowl set between the peaks. The bottom of this basin was half covered with a beautiful growth of dark-green timber, into which the growth upon our mountain-side climbed down and merged. In going down a mountain, I think the distance al- ways is greater than one expects. Mr. Phillips led us down, down, and still farther down, and steeper all the while, until the slope seemed interminable; and then we reached the top of a rock bluff which cropped out and ran along the mountain-side from south to north. " There," said he, pausing at last. " It was right here that Kaiser rounded up those goats for me, at the top of this wall. You see, if it hadn't been for that perpen- dicular drop of eight feet, the band would have gone on down, immediately. Do you see that dead tree? Well, they bunched up behind that, with Kaiser on that side, 72 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES me on this side, and the eight-foot drop below. They didn't like to take that jump, — probably because of the kids. Well, Kaiser held them from getting away on his side, and I exposed on them all the films I had, right from this old dead stub. I leaned against it until it cracked, and I feared it might go over with me." " And what did the goats do, finally? " " At last the old ones got their courage up, and gin- gerly jumped off ; and the kids had to follow suit. The nannies and yearlings landed on their feet, and their momentum carried them on, slipping and sliding head- long down the rest of the way [about fifty feet]. You see, the rest of it is not quite perpendicular, and they slid down very well, of course holding back with their feet wherever the rock was rough." " How about the kid that fell? " " Poor little beggar, he was really hurt. When he jumped from here, he landed on his nose, and gave a bleat of pain. And what was worse, he couldn't recover himself entirely, but went on, half tumbling and half sliding, until he reached the bottom. It made his mouth bleed, and must have hurt him cruelly. I felt awfully sorry for him." Mr. Phillips had barely finished his story, when Charlie Smith, who had been closely scanning the thick, green timber of the basin, suddenly exclaimed, " Something's coming! Something's coming this way,^ — on a dead run ! " "What is it, Charlie?" * " I think it's a bunch of deer." PHOTOGRAPHING MOUNTAIN SHEEP 73 " Or an old silver-tip, — eh, Charlie? " cried Mr. Phillips. "No; it's no silver-tip." We started in a mad scramble along the mountain- side, and before ten paces had been covered each man had thrown a loaded cartridge into the barrel of his rifle. We had not moved more than fifty paces from the goat rocks when we saw two brown-gray animals scurrying nimbly and swiftly along the tree-covered mountain-side, almost on our contour line, and coming straight toward us. Exclamations flew all about. " Here they come ! " " Sheep ! " " Mountain sheep ! " Mechanically we threw our rifles into position, but Charlie cried out sharply, "Don't shoot, men! Don't shoot! They're both ewes! " On they came, headed straight for us, and the com- bined nimbleness and strength with which they ran was beautiful to see. They carried their heads well up, ran close together, and their speed was astonishing. They seemed to sweep over the ground as easily as a hawk flies. They did not see us until they were within about a hundred feet, and then in a graceful curve they swerved off sharply downhill, and flew for safety to the rocky wall below. Then they disappeared. As they passed near us, we saw that the one in the lead was a full- grown ewe, and the other a two-year-old ram. As soon as we could recover from our astonishment, and get our thoughts once more in motion, we naturally concluded that the sheep had kept on running, and soon 74 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES would be a mile away. No one dreamed of seeing them again. But suddenly, like a bolt out of the blue, we heard, " Ah, woo! wool woo! " It was the voice of Kaiser, only a few yards away, coming up from the rocks below. "By jove! Kaiser has stopped those sheep on the goat rocks ! " "We'll photograph 'em, Charlie! Get out your camera, quick, and come on!" said Mr. Phillips. In two minutes we were peering over the edge of the precipice, in an effort to locate the subjects. " They're right down there. If one of you go down there, and the other this way, you'll get them right be- tween your two cameras! " " This is good enough for me! " said Charlie, swing- ing himself over the edge into a perfectly frightful situa- tion. " I see them! I see them! " Mr. Phillips scrambled down the other way, in a most reckless fashion. " Now, boys," said No. 3, " for goodness sake, mind your footing; and don't fall down that wall for a million old pictures! " Those two dare-devils went down to positions on that precipice that I would not have ventured with a camera for any pictures, heads or horns ever taken, or that ever will be taken. If empty-handed, it would not have been quite so bad; but to see them "monkeying around" on the face of a treacherous precipice, handicapped with cameras, relying solely upon their feet to hold them Copyright, 1905, by John M. Phillips. Young Mountain Sheep Ram Photographed September nth, 1905. PHOTOGRAPHING MOUNTAIN SHEEP 75 upon a few bumps and edges of rock, with Sure Death below, was about all that my nerves could endure. I felt like shouting at them constantly, to be careful, and then more careful still, — for I have no desire to camp with a Tragedy; but beyond a few mild admonitions, I held my peace. Leaving my rifle above, I crept down behind Mr. Phillips's position, — at a very easy spot, — until I could see the tableau on the wall. The sheep occupied a comfortable ledge, and the most of the time were aggravatingly concealed from Mr, Phillips by an angle of the wall. They were many feet below Charlie's best position, and although he saw them very plainly, the images his camera got of them were too small to represent much value. Mr. Phillips made several exposures, but in reality had not even one fair chance at a sheep in full view. His best pictures were made when the young ram was looking at him around the angle of rock which usually concealed it. The photograph may well be entitled, " On the Alert," for it shows a sheep as wary and wide- awake as it is possible for one to be. There were mo- ments when that ram seemed to be all eyes. A number of times he craned his neck around the rock, and stared hard at us to see whether we were coming nearer. After the lapse of about ten minutes, the sheep de- cided that they must be going. Without more ado, they lightly sprang from step to step, straight away from Mr. Phillips and me, rapidly descending all the while. The Goat Rocks were soon left far behind, and the last we 76 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES saw of the photographed mountain sheep was their dull- white rump-patches flitting away northward, through the dead timber and up the mountain-side, a mile away. May they live long, and prosper. Some one has said, much too easily, that mountain sheep and mountain goats never inhabit the same local- ity at the same time. As we looked for the last time at the running sheep, and then mechanically glanced at the summit of the mountain-side up which they were bounding fast and free, we saw once more the band of five goats which for days had been loafing on that isolated peak. That was the band which had not received word of our baneful presence. CHAPTER VII A GREAT DAY WITH GOATS Goats Far Up — ^The Climb, and its Difficulties — An Elusive Pair — Ten Big Billies at Hand — Observations of an Hour — Four Goats Killed, and Utilized — ^The Tallest Goat, and the Heaviest — Rolling Carcasses — Down Avalanche Creek to a Beautiful Camp. This day, also, was the eleventh of September, — after the incident of the mountain sheep on the Camera Rocks. Mr. Phillips, Charlie Smith and I descended the steep side of Goat Pass, crossed the basin and slowly climbed the grassy divide that separates it from the source of Avalanche Creek. When half way down the southern side of that divide, we looked far up the side of Phillips Peak, and saw two big old billy goats of shoot- able size. They were well above timber-line, lying where a cloud-land meadow was suddenly chopped off at a ragged precipice. The way up to them was long, and very steep. "That's a long climb. Director," said Mr. Phillips; " but there are no bad rocks." I said that I could make it, in time, — as compared with eternity, — if the goats would wait for me. " Oh, they'll wait! We'll find 'em there, all right," said Charlie, confidently. So we started. 77 78 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES As nearly as I can estimate, we climbed more than a mile, at an angle that for the upper half of the dis- tance was about 30 degrees, — a very steep ascent. At first our way up led through green timber, over smooth ground that was carpeted with needles of spruce and pine. That was cornparatively easy, — no more difficult, in fact, than climbing the stairs of four Washington monuments set one upon another^ At climbing steep mountains, Mr. Phillips, Charlie Smith and the two Norboes are perfect fiends. They are thin, tough and long-winded, and being each of them fully forty pounds under my weight, I made no pretence at tryiriig to keep up with them. As it is in an English workshop, the slowest workman set the pace. In hard climbing, almost every Atlantic-coast man perspires freely, and is very extravagant in the use of air. It frequently happened that when half way up a high mountain, my lungs consumed the air so rapidly that a vacuum was created around me, and I would have to stop and wait for a new supply of oxygen to blow along. My legs behaved much better than my lungs, and to their credit be it said that they never stopped work until my lungs ran out of steani^ As I toiled up that long slope, I thought of a funny little engine that I saw in Borneo, pulling cars over an absurd wooden railway that ran from the bank of the Sadong River to the coal-mines. It would run about a mile at a very good clip, then suddenly cease puffing, and stop. Old Walters, the superintendent, said: "There's only one thing ails that bally engine. A GREAT DAY WITH GOATS 79 The bloomin' little thing can't make steam fast enough! " I was like that engine. I couldn't " keep steam " ; and whenever my lungs became a perfect vacuum, I had to stop and rest, and collect air. Considering the fact that there was game above us, I thought my comrades were very considerate in permitting me to set the pace. Now had some one glared at me with the look of a hungry cannibal, and hissed between his teeth, " Step lively! " it would have made me feel quite at home. ^ In due time we left the green timber behind us, and started up the last quarter of the climb. There we found stunted spruces growing like scraggy brush, three feet high, gnarled and twisted by the elements, and enfeebled by the stony soil on which they bravely tried to grow. Only the bravest of trees could even rear their heads on that appalling steep, — scorched by the sun, rasped by the wind, drenched by the rains and frozen by the snow. But after a hundred yards or so, even the dwarf spruces gave up the struggle. Beyond them, up to our chosen point, the mountain-roof was smooth and bare, except for a sprinkle of fine, flat slide-rock that was very treach- erous stuff to climb over. "Let me take your -rifle. Director!" said Charlie, kindly. " No, thank you. I'll carry it up, or stay down. But you may keep behind me if you will, and catch me if I start to roll I " ' On steep slopes, such as that was, my companions had solemnly warned me not to fall backward and start roll- 8o CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES ing ; for a rolling man gathers no moss. A man bowling helplessly down a mountain-side at an angle of 30 de- grees quickly acquires a momentum which spells death. Often have I looked down a horribly steep stretch, and tried to imagine what I would feel, and think, were I to overbalance backward, and go bounding down. A few hours later we saw a goat carcass take a fright- ful roll down a slope not nearly so steep as where we climbed up, and several times it leaped six feet into the air. To keep out of the sight of the goats it was necessary for us to bear well toward our left; and this brought us close to the edge of the precipice, where the mountain- side was chopped off. In view of the loose stones under foot, I felt like edging more to the right; for the twin chances of a roll down and a fall over began to abrade my nerves. Mr. Phillips and Charlie climbed along so close to the drop that I found myself wondering which of them would be the first to slip and go over. " Keep well over this way. Director, or the goats may wind you! " said Charlie, anxiously. "That's all right, Charlie; he's winded now!" said John. I said we would rest on that; and before I knew the danger, Mr. Phillips had taken a picture of me, resting, and smiling a most idiotic smile. At last we reached the pinnacle which we had se- lected when we first sighted our game. As nearly as we could estimate, afterward, by figuring up known eleva- tions, we were at a height of about nine thousand feet, A GREAT DAY WITH GOATS 8i and though not the highest, it was the dizziest point I ever trod. Except when we looked ahead, we seemed to be fairly suspended in mid-air! To look down under one's elbow was to look into miles of dizzy, bottomless space. The steep slope had led us up to the sharp point of a crag that stuck up like the end of a man's thumb, and terminated in a crest as sharp as the comb of a house- roof. Directly in front, and also on the left, was a sheer drop. From the right, the ragged edge of the wall ran on up, to the base of Phillips Peak. Beyond our perch, twelve feet away, there yawned a great basin-abyss, and on beyond that rocky gulf rose a five-hundred-foot wall at the base of the Peak. A little to the right of our posi- tion another ragged pinnacle thrust its sharp apex a few feet higher than ours, and eventually caused me much trouble in securing my first shot. We reached the top of our crag, and peered over its highest rocks just in time to see our two goats quietly walk behind a ragged point of rock farther up the wall, and disappear. They were only a hundred and fifty yards distant; but they had not learned of our existence, and were not in the least alarmed. Naturally, we ex- pected them to saunter back into view, for we felt quite sure they did not mean to climb down that wall to the bottom of the basin. So we lay flat upon the slope, rifles in hand, and waited, momentarily expecting the finish. They were due to cross a grassy slope between two crags, not more than forty feet wide, and if not fired at within about ten seconds of their reappearance, they would be 82 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES lost behind the rocks! The chance was not nearly so good as it looked. But minutes passed, and no goats returned. It be- came evident that the dawdling pair had lain down behind the sheltering crag, for a siesta in the sun. We composed ourselves to await their pleasure, and in our first breath of opportunity, looked off south-easterly, over the meadow whereon the two goats had been feeding. And then we saw a sight of sights. Rising into view out of a little depression on the far- ther side of the meadow, lazily sauntering along, there came ten big, snow-white billy goats ! They were head- ing straight toward us, and there was not a nanny, nor a kid, nor even a young billy in the bunch. The air was clear; the sun was shining brightly, the meadow was like dark olive-brown plush, — and how grandly those big, pure-white creatures did loom up ! When first seen they were about four hundred yards away, but our glasses made the distance seem only one-third of that. For more than an hour we lay flat on our pinnacle, and watched those goats. No one thought of time. It was a chance of a lifetime. My companions were pro- foundly surprised by the size of the collection; for pre- vious to that moment, no member of our party ever had seen more than four big male goats in one bunch. The band before us was at the very top of a sky- meadow of unusual luxuriance, which climbed up out of the valley on our right, and ran on up to the comb of rock that came down from Phillips Peak. In area the meadow was five hundred yards wide, and half a mile Ni^- .■'V-^-V^.^v^-^^-' The Sky Pasture of the Thirteen «« Billy " Goats Elevation, about 9,000 feet. The goats occupied the center of the picture, but appear only as white specks. The hunters lay on the top of a pinnacle like that in the foregrnind. Taking the First Shot The end uf "Old Two-Teeth." Guide Smith lies within six feet of the brink of a precipice. A GREAT DAY WITH GOATS 83 long. Afterward, when we walked over it, we found it was free from stones, but full of broad steps, and covered with a dense, greenish-purple matting of ground verdure that was as soft to the foot as the thickest pile carpet. The main body of this verdure is a moss-like plant called mountain avens, closely related to cinquefoil, and known botanically as Dryas octopetala. It has a very pretty leaf measuring about iV by ^ inches, with finely serrate edges. In September a mass of it contains a mixture of harmonious colors, — olive-green, brown, gray and pur- ple. On this the goats were feeding. This plant is very common in those mountains above timber-line, especially on southern slopes; but it demands a bit of ground almost exclusively for itself, and thrives best when alone. Along with this there grew a moss-like saxifrage {Saxifraga austromontana) , which to any one not a botanist seems to be straight moss. It grows in cheerful little clumps of bright green, and whenever it is found on a mountain-pasture, one is pleased to meet it. I record these notes here, because our ten goats had been in no hurry. They were more than deliberate; they were almost stagnant. In an hour, the farthest that any one of them moved was about one hundred yards, and the most of them accomplished even less than that. They were already so well fed that they merely minced at the green things around them. Evidently they had fed to satiety in the morning hours, before we reached them. As they straggled forward, they covered about two acres of ground. Each one seemed steeped and sodden in laziness. When out grazing, our giant tortoises move 84 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES faster than they did on that lazy afternoon. When the leader of this band of weary Willies reached the geo- graphical centre of the sky-meadow, about two hundred yards from us, he decided to take a sun-bath, on the most luxurious basis possible to him. Slowly he focussed his mind upon a level bench of earth, about four feet wide. It contained an old goat-bed, of loose earth, and upon this he lay down, with his back uphill. At this point, however, he took a sudden resolution. After about a minute of reflection, he. decided that the head of his bed was too high and too humpy; so, bracing himself back with his right foreleg, like an ancient Ro- man senator at a feast, he set his left leg in motion and flung out from under his breast a quantity of earth. The loose soil rose in a black shower, two feet high, and the big hoof flung it several feet down the hill. After about a dozen rakes, he settled down to bask in the warm sun- shine, and blink at the scenery of Avalanche Valley. Five minutes later, a little higher up the slope, an- other goat did the same thing; and eventually two or three others laid down. One, however, deliberately sat down on his haunches, dog-fashion, with his back uphill. For fully a quarter of an hour he sat there in profile, slowly turning his head from side to side, and gazing at the scenery while the wind blew through his whiskers. So far as I could determine, no sentinel was posted. There was no leader, and no individual seemed particu- larly on the alert for enemies. One and all, they felt perfectly secure. In observing those goats one fact became very notice- A GREAT DAY WITH GOATS 85 able. At a little distance, their legs looked very straight and stick-like, devoid of all semblance of gracefulness and of leaping power. The animals were very white and immaculate, — as were all the goats that we saw, — and they stood out with the sharpness of clean snow-patches on dark rock. Nature may have known about the much overworked principle of " protective coloration " when she fashioned the mountain goat, but if so, she was guilty of cruelty to goats in clothing this creature with pelage which, in the most comfortable season for hunt- ing, renders it visible for three miles or more. Even the helpless kidling is as white as cotton, and a grand mark for eagles. That those goats should look so stiff and genuinely ungraceful on their legs, gave me a distinct feeling of disappointment. From that moment I gave up all hope of ever seeing a goat perform any feats requiring either speed or leaping powers ; for we saw that of those short, thick legs, — nearly as straight as four Indian clubs, — nothing is to be expected save power in lifting and slid- ing, and rocklike steadfastness. ; In all the two hundred and thirty-nine goats that we saw, we observed nothing to disprove the conclusive evidence of that day regard- ing the physical powers of the mountain goat. While we watched the band of mountain loafers, still another old billy goat, making No. 13, appeared across the rock basin far to our left. From the top of the northern ridge, he set out to walk across the wide rock wall that formed the western face of Phillips Peak. From where we were the wall seemed almost smooth, but 86 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES to the goat it must have looked otherwise. Choosing a narrow, light-gray line of stratification that extended across the entire width of the wall, the solitary animal set out on its promenade. The distance to be traversed to reach the uppermost point of our sky-pasture was about fifteen hundred feet, and the contour line chosen was about four hundred feet above our position. The incident was like a curtain-raiser to a tragic play. That goat's walk was a very tame performance. The animal plodded steadily along, never faster, never slower, but still with a purposeful air, like a postman delivering mail. For a mountain goat, not pursued or frightened, it was a rapid walk, probably three miles an hour. Its legs swung to and fro with the regularity and steadiness of four pendulums, and I think they never once paused. The animal held to that one line of stratification, until near the end of its promenade. There a great mass of rock had broken away from the face of the cliff, and the goat was forced to climb down about fifty feet, then up again, to regain its chosen route. A few minutes later its ledge ran out upon the apex of the sky-meadow. There Billy paused for a moment, to look about him; then he picked out a soft spot, precisely where the steep slope of the meadow ended against the rocky peak, and lay down to rest. Up to that time, Mr. Phillips and I had killed only one goat each, and as we lay there we had time to de- cide upon the future. He resolved to kill one fine goat as a gift to the Carnegie Museum, and I wished two more for my own purposes. We decided that at a total A GREAT DAY WITH GOATS 87 of three goats each, — two less than our lawful right, — we would draw the line, and kill no more. The first shot at the pair of invisible goats was to be mine; and as already suggested, the circumstances were like those surrounding a brief moving target in a shoot- ing-gallery. Before us were two rocky crag-points, and behind the one on the left, the animals lay hidden for fully an hour. Between the two crags the V-shaped spot of the meadow, across which I knew my goat would walk or run, looked very small. If he moved a yard too far, the right-hand crag would hide him from me until he would be three hundred yards away. I was compelled to keep my rifle constantly ready, and one eye to the front, in order to see my goat in time to get a shot at him while he crossed that forty feet of ground. And after all, I came ever so near to making a fail- ure of my vigil. I was so absorbed in watching that unprecedented band of billies that before I knew it, the two goats were in the centre of the V-shaped stage, and moving at a good gait across it. Horrors! Hurriedly I exclaimed to Mr. Phillips, " There they are! " took a hurried aim at the tallest goat, and just as his head was going out of sight, let go. He flinched upward at the shoulders, started forward at a trot, and instantly disappeared from my view. The instant my rifle cracked, Mr. Phillips said, imperatively, " Don't move! Don't make a sound, and those goats will stay right where they are." Instantly we " froze." All the goats sprang up, and 88 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES stood at attention. All looked fixedly in our direction, but the distant eleven were like ourselves, — frozen into statues. In that band not a muscle moved for fully three minutes. Finally the goats decided that the noise they had heard was nothing at which to be alarmed. One by one their heads began to move, and in five minutes their fright was over. Some went on feeding, but three or four of the band decided that they would saunter down our way and investigate that noise. But what of my goat? John slid over to my left, to look as far as possible behind the intercepting crag. Finally he said, " He's done for! He's lying out there, dead." As soon as possible I looked at him ; and sure enough, he lay stretched upon the grass, back uphill, and appar- ently very dead. The other goat had gone on and joined the ten. The investigating committee came walking down toward us with a briskness which soon brought them within rifle-shot; and then Mr. Phillips picked out his Carnegie Museum goat and opened fire, at a range of about three hundred yards. The first shot went high, but at the next the goat came down, hit behind the shoul- der. This greatly alarmed all the other goats, but they were so confused that three of them came down toward us at a fast trot. At two hundred yards I picked out one, and fired. At my third shot, it fell, but presently scrambled up, ran for the edge of the precipice and dropped over out of sight. It landed, mortally wounded, A GREAT DAY WITH GOATS 89 on some ragged rocks about fifty feet down, and to end its troubles a shot from the edge quickly finished it. Mr. Phillips killed his first goat, and before the bunch got away, broke the leg of another. This also got over the edge of the precipice, and had to be finished up from the edge. But a strange thing remains to be told. By the time Mr. Phillips and I had each fired about two shots of the last round, in the course of which we ran well over to the right in order to command the field; to our blank amazement my first goat, — the dead one! — staggered to his feet, and started oflf toward the edge of the precipice. It was most uncanny to see a dead animal thus come to life! " Look, Director," cried Charlie Smith, " your first goat's come to life! Kill him again! Kill him again, quick!" I did so; and after the second killing he remained dead. I regret to say that in my haste to get those goats measured, skinned, and weighed before night, I was so absorbed that I forgot to observe closely where my first shot struck the goat that had to be killed twice. I think however, that it went through his liver and other organs without touching the vital portions of the lungs. My first goat was the tallest one of the six we killed on that trip, but not the heaviest. He was a real patri- arch, and decidedly on the downhill side of life. He was so old that he had but two incisor teeth remaining, and they were so loose they were almost useless. He was thin in flesh, and his pelage was not up to the mark 90 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES in length. But in height he was tall, for he stood forty- two inches at the shoulders, with the foreleg pushed up where it belongs in a standing animal. Mr. Phillips's Carnegie Museum goat was the heavi- est one shot on that trip, its gross weight being two hun- dred and seventy-six pounds. Charlie decided to roll the skinned carcass of my goat down the mountain, if possible within rifle-shot of the highest point of green timber, in the hope that a grizzly might find it, and thereby furnish a shot. He cut off the legs at the knees, and started the body rolling on the sky-pasture, end over end. It went like a wheel, whirling down at a terrific rate, sometimes jumping fifty feet. It went fully a quarter of a mile before it reached a small basin, and stopped. The other carcass, also, was rolled down. It went sidewise, like a bag of grain, and did not roll quite as far as the other. By the time we had finished our work on the goats, — no trifling task, — night was fast approaching, and leav- ing all the heads, skins and meat for the morrow, we started for our new camp, five miles away. We went down the meadow (thank goodness!), and soon struck the green timber; and then we went on down, down, and still farther down, always at thirty degrees, until it seemed to me we never would stop going down, never reach the bottom and the trail. But everything earthly has an end. At the end of a very long stretch of plunging and sliding, we reached Avalanche Creek, and drank deeply of the icy-cold water for which we had so long been athirst. A GREAT DAY WITH GOATS 91 After three miles of travel down the creek, over slide- rock, through green timber, yellow willows, more green timber and some down timber, we heard the cheerful whack of Huddleston's axe, and saw on tree-trunk and bough the ruddy glow of the new camp-fire. The new camp was pitched in one of the most fas- cinating spots I ever camped within. The three tents stood at the southern edge of a fine, open grove of giant spruces that gave us good shelter on rainy days. Under- neath the trees there was no underbrush, and the ground was deeply carpeted with dry needles. Grand moun- tains rose on either hand, practically from our camp- fire, and for our front view a fine valley opened south- ward for six miles, until its lower end was closed by the splendid mass of Roth Mountain and Glacier. Close at hand was a glorious pool of ice-water, and firewood " to burn." Yes, there was one other feature, of great mo- ment, — abundant grass for our horses, in the open meadow in front of the tents.. To crown all these luxuries, Mr. Phillips announced that, according to mountain customs already established, and precedents fully set, that camp would then and there be named in my honor, — " Camp Hornaday." What more could any sportsman possibly desire? CHAPTER VIII THE MOUNTAIN GOAT AS WE SAW HIM A Mountain Goat's Paradise — General Character of the Animal — Its Place in Nature — Not an "Antelope" — Description — Distribution — Food — Sleeping-Places — Accidents in Snow-Slides — Swimming — Stupid or Not Stupid — Courage — A Philosophic Animal — Affection — Fighting Powers — A Goat Kills a Grizzly — Bear-Shy Goats — The Tragedy of the Self-Trapped Goats. " On dizzy ledge of mountain wall, above the timber-line, I hear the riven slide-rock fall toward the stunted pine. Upon the paths I tread secure no foot dares follow me. For I am master of the crags, and march above the scree." — The Cragmaster. Of the thirty days spent by us in the home of the mountain goat, two only were devoted to hunting goats to shoot them. Scarcely a day passed without at least one flock of goats in sight. We saw two hundred and thirty-nine individuals, challenging all repeaters, and carefully eliminating those seen a second or third time. It was because we shot little that we saw much. The high country between the Elk and the Bull Rivers is indeed a mountain goat's paradise, and what I there saw of that strange creature gave me an entirely new set of impressions regarding its character and habits. We studied goats alive, we photographed them, shot 9Z THE MOUNTAIN GOAT AS WE SAW HIM 93 them, measured, weighed and ate them. Finally, we brought back with us five living specimens; and as I became really acquainted with this creature, its stock gradually rose to par. In its form, the mountain goat is the most pictu- resque and droll-looking of all our large game ani- mals. In some respects it is the bravest and hardiest of our hoofed animals, and the only one that is practically devoid of fear. I am tempted to believe that of the few men who have hunted this strange animal, not many have taken time to become thoroughly acquainted with it, or to for- mulate a careful estimate of its character as revealed in its native mountains. Many writers have called it stupid, and very few have recognized it as an unrivalled mountaineer. It is folly to attempt to compare any animal with the Himalayan tahr, the markhor, ibex or chamois until the comparer has seen and studied them in their homes. It is my belief, however, that no animal, hoofed or clawed, can surpass the climbing feats of the mountain goat. Certainly there is no American quadruped, not even the bold and hardy mountain sheep, which will with the utmost indifiference climb an eighty-degree precipice, or jog across the face of a five-hundred- foot wall on a footing so narrow and uncertain that the strongest glass cannot detect it. I have never seen a mountain sheep take such desperate chances on the rocks as any goat will essay as serenely as a boulevardier promenades along a ten-foot sidewalk. 94 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES Once while bear-hunting at Lake Josephine with Charlie Smith, we came to a particularly high, long and smooth precipice. The rock wall was nearly half a mile long, and I think at least six hundred feet high, with a hundred feet of very steep slide-rock at its foot. It curved around a basin, like the wall of a gigantic Colos- seum. A big and shaggy billy goat elected to walk across the face of that appalling wall, about half-way from bot- tom to top, and as we slowly marched past far below, we watched him. He was so high up that he felt no fear of us, and on the dizzy course that he elected to take, he looked like a mechanical toy pegging along. In that clear air, however, our glasses brought him down to us exceed- ingly well. As is always the case when upon rocks, the firmness with which each hoof was planted, — to avoid slips, and to detect loose rocks, — gave the animal a very stiflf gait. His steps were long, as regular as the tick of a clock, and not for one second did the animal hesitate regard- ing his course. His gait was as steady as if he were walking along a smooth road, and the directness of his course was remarkable. Occasionally he paused to look down and scrutinize us, but after each inspection he jogged on as indifferently as before. I am sure no mountain sheep, nor any other American animal, ever would attempt to go over that appalling course. It was a sight worth coming far to see. How could the goat have known that a practicable route lay before him? There must have been a stratum THE MOUNTAIN GOAT AS WE SAW HIM 95 of rock, harder than that above it, which had disinte- grated more slowly than the rest of the wall, and left a projecting rim; but if so, our glasses failed to show it. The spectacle we saw was of a big goat briskly prome- nading on nothing, straight across the face of a bare wall. We watched him with bated breath, as one watches a steeple-jack who is repairing a finial; and for my part, I would not have shot him for a hundred dollars. To have killed him as he traced out that dizzy path would have been murder, no less; and think of the unforgetable horror of his fall through space upon that jagged slide- rock! Among naturalists, a good deal has been said about the inappropriateness of calling this animal a " goat." Some have laid stress upon its antelope-like characters, and some have seriously proposed, and even used, the name " goat antelope." If the mountain goat has about him anything that is particularly like the typical ante- lopes, it must be very deep down in his anatomy, for thus far it never has been pointed out. Think of an antelope with a form like a pygmy bison, carrying its head lower than its shoulders! Certainly the resem- blance alleged is not found in his massive hoofs, his short cannon bone, his six-inch tail, his thick and postlike legs, or his two humps. The strange glands behind his horns are absolutely unique. His shoulder hump is like that of the European bison, but the hair-hump on his hindquarters is not reproduced on any other animal. His hairy coat is as unlike that of all antelopes now living as could possibly be imagined. His huge, india-rubber 96 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES hoof resembles that of an antelope about as much as the hoof of a cow resembles that of a deer, but no more. This creature may not be a twin brother to Capra hircus — the first known goat ; but at the same time, it is at least a million years from being an " antelope," of any sort. In fact, its build is far heavier than that of the other members of the two subfamilies of goats, to say nothing of the long-necked, slender-limbed and agile antelopes. A real crag-climbing antelope would indeed be a zoolog- ical novelty. It is sometimes said that this animal is not a " goat " because it does not belong to the genus Capra, a group of animals restricted to the Old World. But there are a number of goats that do not belong to that genus, just as there are many deer that are not found in the genus Cervus. The word " goat " is a family name, the same as " deer." Shall we quarrel with the name " deer " as applied to our mule deer, or white-tailed deer, because they are outside the pale of Cervus? And yet, such a departure would be quite as well justified as are the objections to " goat " for the white cragmaster of the Rockies. If there are any writers who wish to call Oreamnos an " antelope," let them do so; but the Reader is advised that in adhering to the name " mountain goat " he will be sufficiently correct. In order to set forth at a glance the mountain goat's place in nature, and also its nearest relatives, this dia- gram is offered : THE MOUNTAIN GOAT AS WE SAW HIM 97 Q u o o s SI o to pi! Q Pi O a. o a < ■ ■ T3 Q ■* •-< en o g «o S u < J3 fa M o u .JS H Subfamily Caprine: The Long- horned Goats. Subfamily RUPICAPRIN^ : The Short- horned Goats. Genus First-known Goats . . . Capra Persia, Greece, Palestine, etc. Ibexes Capra Asia, Europe, N-E Africa. Turs Capra Spain, Caucasus Mountains. Markhors Capra Himalayas, north-west of India. Tahrs (usually placed in Cap- rinse) .... Hemitragus India, north and south; Arabia. Serows, or Forest Goats . Nemorhisdus North-east Asia and Japan. Gorals Cemas North India, Tibet and China. Rocky Mountain Goat . . Oreamnos North-western North America. Chamois .... Rupicapra Southern Europe. Takin Budorcas Southern China. The classification of both these subfamilies was founded upon the genus Capra, as first represented by the goats of Greece, Persia and Asia Minor. Later on, to avoid the multiplication of genera, the. ibexes, mar- khors and others were taken into that genus. The goats of the Subfamily Gaprince are partly distinguished by flattened horns of considerable length, which sometimes curve upward in remarkable lines. From all these forms the Rocky Mountain goat differs materially, just as the prong-horned antelope differs from African antelopes. The members of the Subfamily Gaprince are so much alike that they stand in one group, like a three-peaked island rising out of a sea. In the Subfamily RupicaprineB 98 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES there are six solitary islets, one each for the tahrs, serows, gorals, mountain goat, chamois and takin, — all of them short-horned goats, no more, no less. In its physical aspect the mountain goat is both strik- ing and peculiar. In September it is brilliantly white, and its coat is as immaculate as a new fur cloak fresh from the hands of the furrier. From nose to tail, it is newly combed, and without spot or stain. It seems as white as newly fallen snow, but in direct comparison with snow there is a faint, cream-like tint. It is the only wild hoofed animal in the world (s. f. a. k.) which is pure white all the year round; for in spring and summer the white mountain sheep stains his coat very badly. The pelage of the mountain goat is the finest and softest, and also the warmest, to be found on any North American hoofed animal except the musk-ox. To wind, dry cold and snow it is seemingly impervious, but there are times and seasons when the rain-coat is imperfect, and too short to shed rain. In September, the rain-coat is not fully developed, and the fine pelage which covers the sides is almost as soft as down. As winter approaches, the fine hair of the under coat seems to stop growing, but the coarser and straighter hair of the rain-coat keeps on until it has attained such luxuriant length that the animal takes on a shaggy appearance. Late in Novem- ber this reaches its full length. Even in September, the beard and knee-breeches are of good length, and these, with the queerly rounded crests, on the shoulders and on the hindquarters, contain the only hair of the whole coat that is coarse and harsh. — <. x>i a ivjuuiiiain ^joat Hind Foot of a Mountain Goat The Function of a Mountain Goat's Rear Dew-Claws They are used as a brake in descending inclines that are very steep and smooth. Drawn as seen in use, in the Zoological Park, New York. THE MOUNTAIN GOAT AS WE SAW HIM 99 About six goats out of every seven are pure white, but the coat of the seventh contains in its tail, and along the pelvic crest, a few scattering, dark-brown hairs. This is noticeable on kids in their first year, as well as on adult animals. Occasionally the tail of a goat contains so many dark hairs that the normal color is really changed; but it should be remembered that these occa- sional occurrences of brown hairs do not indicate any specific differences. The goat is very stockily built, — for stability and strength rather than for agility and speed. The long spinal processes of his dorsal vertebrae give hini a hump somewhat like that of a bison ; and like a bison he carries his head low, and has short, thick legs, terminating in big hoofs. His body is big and full, and his sides stick out with plenty. He can carry his head above the line of his neck and shoulders, but he seldom does so save when frightened, or looking up. His horns are jet black, round, very smooth for the terminal half, and sharp as skewers. When the goat fights, he gets close up to his assailant's forequarters, and with a powerful thrust diagonally upward, punctures his enemy's abdomen. In attacking, the movements of the goat are exceedingly jerky and spasmodic, advancing and whirling away again with the quick jumps of the mod- ern prize-fighter. The horns are not long, usually rang- ing in length from 9 to 1 1 inches by 5% inches in basal circumference. The longest pair on record is owned by Mr. Clive Phillips-Wolley, of Victoria, B. C, and its length is eleven and one-half inches. loo CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES The gland behind the horn of the mountain goat is largest during September and October, and subsides somewhat after the close of the mating season. If it serves any useful purpose, that purpose is as yet un- known. On September nth, each gland is about the size of a small black-walnut, flattened on the naked sur- face which touches the horn, and round within the skin. Instead of lying flat upon the skull, as shown by many taxidermists, the naked surface stands upon its edge. It is decidedly concave at the centre, black in color, smooth, and practically odorless. It fits up closely against the base of the horn, and of the naked portion only a narrow edge is visible. We found no oil, nor even moisture, exuding. When cut into sections, the interior appears to be calloused flesh, like the palm of the human hand. On the date mentioned above, the naked portion of the gland of a large male goat was one and one-half inches in diameter, and at the centre there was a pronounced depression. Of the six goats killed by us, the horns of none showed evidence of any disintegrating action from these glands. Yet one of my specimens was very old. The female goat possesses these glands, but they are pro- portionately smaller than those of males of the same age. On the living animal they are not conspicuous. The eyes of the adult goat are not " jet black." The iris is straw-color, a little darker than Naples yellow, and the pupil is a broad, blunt-ended ellipse. J. Kanof- sky, of New York, makes them correctly. The edge of the eyelid, and the naked portions of the nostrils and lips, are black. The eyes of a young kid are so dark they THE MOUNTAIN GOAT AS WE SAW HIM loi appear to be all black, but when nine months old the iris assumes its true color. The hoofs are like big, twin masses of india-rubber, — a ball of soft rubber, encased in a strong shell of hard rubber. It is chiefly the soft rubber which enables this strange animal to climb as it does. The shell of hard rubber is thin, and around the front half of the hoof it forms an edge which may be sharp or blunt, according to the wear upon it. On the front hoofs, this edge always is more worn than on the rear hoofs, because the former do the hardest work. The bottom of a goat's hoof is very dififerent from that of a mountain sheep, the former being concave near the toe, and convex at the heel, while that of the sheep is a hollow cup, with sharp edges. I was rather pleased at finding out the trick by which a goat descends a dangerously steep incline. Over smooth rock that stands at an angle of forty-five degrees, — on which no man can stand, much less move about, — a mountain sheep goes down pell-mell, slipping, sliding and plunging almost helplessly until it reaches some kind of a stopping-place. Not so the goat. I once induced a captive goat to descend a plank inclined at forty-five degrees, and he tobogganed on his rear hoofs, with his monstrous dew- claws pressed hard upon the wood, and his hindlegs held quite stiff. His hocks were within three inches of the wood and his rubber-like dew-claws acted as first-class brakes. His front hoofs guided his course, and took advantage of every rough spot, but the animal did not slide upon them, as he did upon the posterior pair. I02 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES The front feet possess a surprising amount of grasp- ing power. It is natural for a goat leaping high up to hook his front feet over any available edge, and hold fast until his rear hoofs can find a hold, and push up. In the Zoological Park,' one of our goats had a great fancy for climbing a tree-box that protected a small red-cedar tree,, and perching for minutes upon the tops of the four posts, seven feet from the ground. The posts were cov- ered with wire netting of half-inch mesh. The goat leaped upon the side of this, dug the points of his hoofs against the rough surface, and kept digging until he could reach the top of a post with one foot, and hook it over. After that the rest was easy, and it was always a droll sight to see that creature so poised, calmly survey- ing the landscape. The long, straight beard of a male goat always im- parts to the animal an uncanny, and even human-like appearance. When he sits down, dog-fashion, and turns his head first one way and then the other while he gazes admiringly upon the scenery before him, his appearance is strongly suggestive of patriarchal humanity. Although the true abiding-place of the mountain goat is from timber-line to the tops of the summit divides, and the precipices which buttress the peaks, it wanders elsewhere with a degree of erratic freedom that in a clifif-dweller is remarkable. It seems very strange for white goats to range far down into the timber, and remain there, but they often do so. In 1904 a large band of goats, reported at thirty or more, came down to Sparwood station on the railway a few miles below Bottom of a Mountain Goat's Foot Bottom of a Sheep's Foot Skeleton of an Adult Male Mountain Goat By courtesy of the Field Columbian Museum, Chicago. F. J. V. Skiff, Director. THE MOUNTAIN GOAT AS WE SAW HIM 103 Michel, to visit a salt-lick. At Skaguay, Alaska, goats have been killed in the suburbs of the town, only a few feet above tide-water. Mr. W. H. Wright says that until very recently goats descended every fall from the main range of the Rocky Mountains in north-western Mon- tana, and crossed the level Flathead Valley, a distance of about fifteen miles, to the Mission Mountains, return- ing in the spring. The known range of the mountain goat extends from the Teton Mountains of Wyoming (1892) northward along the main range of the Rockies to the latitude of Ft. Simpson, 62°. Northward of that point, we lack in- formation, but it is very probable that on the main Rocky Mountain range only, but not westward thereof, it will be found much farther north than the sixty-second parallel. Along the Pacific coast, from Vancouver northward to Cook Inlet, the range of this animal in the coast mountains is almost continuous. From the great inte- rior area of Yukon Territory, from the main chain of the Rockies to the coast mountains, the species is totally absent. Regarding the eastern limit of the mountain goat, a surprising record has come from Mr. M. P. Dunham, of Ovando, Montana, a guide and hunter of forty years' experience on the trail, who knows this animal very well. He states that in 1882 or 1883, he killed two mountain goats in the Chalk Buttes on Box Elder Creek, a tribu- tary of the Little Missouri, in western North Dakota. At first the great distance of this locality (about four hundred miles) from the main range of the Rockies made this report seem almost incredible, but the record I04 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES comes to me directly from Mr. Dunham, and his stand- ing fairly compels belief. Between the Little Missouri and the Rockies the great plains are broken by only a few small and widely separated groups of mountains, all of which rise like islands out of a sea. Mr. George Bird Grinnell once received a report of goats having been killed by Indians in the Little Snowy mountains, a group well out on the Montana plains. The map accompanying these notes shows only actual occurrences of Oreamnos during the past fifteen years. Along the Coast of British Columbia and Alaska, and the Stickine and Skeena Rivers, the occurrences reported were so numerous that the lines are really continuous. Beyond doubt, the goat occurs in many localities not marked on the map; but it seems best to be exact, and stop short of uncertainties. We endeavored to learn something regarding the food habits of the goat as displayed on the mountain summits of south-eastern British Columbia. To this end, I took a sample of the contents of the stomach of my first goat, panned it out, and permanently preserved a series of specimens. First of all, we found that on those mountains, in Sep- tember, Oreamnos is not a grazing animal. Of grass we found only a few blades. It would seem however, that this was due to an autumn caprice, for surely in other seasons, and in other localities, this animal must feed upon grass. The stomach contained no woody fibre, and nothing to indicate a browsing habit, save a few leaves of the yellow willow, which grows in the sunshine of open val- THE MOUNTAIN GOAT AS WE SAW HIM 105 leys, or upon slide-ways. In that locality at least, the goat is not a September browser. During our whole thirty days on, his home range, we saw not one twig, nor a piece of bark, that had been bitten off by goat or sheep. In September, the British Columbian goat is a crop- per. He lives by cropping the thick leaves, and stems also, of a number of large weedlike plants which grow abundantly up to timber-line. Our first two goats were shot while feeding upon a lace-leaved anemone or pasque flower, called Pulsatilla occidentalis. Its leaves are finely cut and lacelike, and one plant furnishes several good mouthfuls. It was quite abundant, and the goats were fond of it. We found it in fruit, with the peduncle elongated into an upright stalk from eight to ten inches high, crowned by a head of silky achenes, with long, plumose styles, very suggestive of a ripe dandelion. Here is the whole array of species that we found in my goat's stomach, and matched by plants found grow- ing around our camp. The entire mass would have filled a peck measure, and it was so slightly masticated that we had no great difficulty in recognizing its principal in- gredients. My specimens were identified by Dr. D. T. MacDougal, as follows: Lace-Leaved Anemone Pulsatilla occidentalis Mountain Sorrel Otyria digyna. Wild Valerian Valeriana. Yellow Willow Salix. Squaw-Weed Senecio triangularis. "Goat-Weed," with flower like candytuft , . Unidentified. Mountain-Timothy Phleum alpinum. "Wild Pea" Hedysarum. Wild Strawberry Unidentifiable. RANGE OF THE WHITE MOUNTAIN GOAT, AS IT IS IN 1906. EXCEPTING THE TETON MOUNTAINS UNITED STATES Idaho: head Wyoming: Teton Mountains, 1892 Montana: Big Hole Country, 1899 Granite Country; Mission Range, Flatl Reservation St. Mary's Lakes region, 1902 . Bitter Root Mountains Washington: Silverton, Cascade Mountains, 1892 Conconally, 1884; Slocan Mountains and Lake Chelan W. H. Wright Samuel C. Pirie W. H. Wright A. P. Proctor W. H. Wright A. P. Proctor W. H. Wright BRITISH COLUMBIA H. W. Herchmer John M. Phillips T. Van Nostrand Madison Grant F. Soues W. Stephenson James McKern Fernie: 1 904 .... Elk River: 1 905 .... Bull River: 1905 B Spillamachene River: Golden, 1904 Clinton: 1905 .... Quesnel Forks: 1 905 . Bakerville (north-east): 1905 Slocan Lake, east, 1888; Similkameen River, 1888; Coqui- halla River, 1888; Harrison Lake; Pitt Lake, north; Princess Louise Inlet; Bridge River; Wauchope (Brewer Creek); Yellowhead Pass; Canoe River, 1885; Head of Eraser River; Peace River, longitude 125°, latitude 56°; Knight Inlet, laritude 51°; Bute Inlet; Dean Channel; Gardiner Canal; Kitimat Arm; Skeena River (from Port Essington 200 miles up); Nass River; Stickine; Iscoot; McDame Creek (Dease River); Scheslay River; Francis Lake. "The Goat is the most widely distributed animal in British Columbia, and except the black bear is the only animal found through- out the length and breadth of the province. Apparently it is equally at home in the dry belt, and the wet coast belt lying east and west of the Cascade Mountains." — Letter and map, dated March 12, 1906. Big-Horn Hills: Head of Athabasca River, 1902 . . G. O. Shields (Eastern slope of Rockies.) 106 Warburton Pike RANGE OF WHITE MOUNTAIN GOAT— Continued. Ashanola: Similkameen; West Kootenay; Bridge River;' Empire Valley; Chilcotin; Knight's Inlet; Stickine River, "and a dozen other places between Lagan and Wrangel. It is not found on Vancouver Island. I believe it occurs almost everywhere else.," — 1906. , Tidewater Inlets : Jervis ; Bute ; Knight's ; Kingcome;" Khutze and Gardiner, etc. to 60° north latitude. Not on Vancouver Island or other islands. Jtlin: 1906 J. Williams South Fork of Stickine River: 1905 Samuel C. Pirie "Skeena and Nass Rivers, for 200 miles up," from Port Essington A. G. Hains Goat River Mountains: Isaac's Lake (Barkerville) . . James McKern Clive Phillips-WoUey ■Francis Kermode J. B. Tyrrell YUKON TERRITORY Not found north of McMillan River Not found north of the summit of White Pass, nor near Lake Bennett W. C. McKenzie (Skaguay) Main range of Rocky Mountains, from Peace River to lati- tude of Fort Simpson W. J. McLean Lake Francis: (eastward; latitude 61° 30', longitude 129°; 1906). "There are no goats in the Yukon Territory on the western slopes of the Rocky Mountains, or other interior ranges. I know nothing about the eastern slopes. Goats occur on the eastern slopes of the coast ranges, and some of the spurs. The same statement will apply to Alaska." ■ Charles Sheldon ALASKA "Almost anywhere near sea-coast Kenai Peninsula." But "rarely Range " (eastward), 1906. Skaguay: Glacier Station . from Washington to 1 found beyond Coast Juneau, within 30 miles Chilkat River, 45 miles up, 1905 Kluane Lake, 1905 Co/)/)fr ^iWr, 1900, "mountains near mouth" Wrangel Mountains, 1900 (Gerdine); Mt. St. Elias range, near Yakutat, 1899; Controller Bay region; between Tanana and White Rivers, 1898. Knick River, 1901 Kenai Peninsula, 1903 107 • John W. Worden I A. L. Andrews !W. C. McKenzie I. N. Stephenson R. A. Gunnison W. L. Breeze D. G. Elliot Alfred H. Brooks J. Alden Loring James H. Kidder io8 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES This is the greatest array of species that I ever found in the stomach of one animal. It shows that in choosing his food the goat is a broad-minded creature, with a versatile and vigorous appetite. No wonder his sides are round. It is probable that in spring the goat's bill of fare includes many species of plants not in the above list, and that throughout the year it varies greatly. In spring the flesh of this animal is so strongly flavored by the wild onion, then greedily fed upon, that it is quite unpalatable; but by September that flavor has totally disappeared, and goat's flesh, cooked and seasoned with a modicum of intelligence, is then as good as venison of the same age. In winter, goats sometimes, — but not frequently — browse upon the twigs of coniferous trees. Mr. Phillips has seen evergreen twigs that have been bitten off for food, when the snow lay deep on the mountains ; and he says that in winter the goats go down into the green timber to look for food. Judging by what we saw in the Elk River mountains, the mountain goat avoids the drifting snows of winter by choosing for its sleeping-places the knifelike edges of high " hogbacks " between mountain peaks. And yet, over those ridges the wind sweeps with a fierceness and frigidity which it seems no living creature could long withstand. It is doubtful if the big-horn ever lies down to rest and to sleep on a hogback over which the wind is blowing seventy miles an hour, with a temperature of forty degrees below zero; but the goat does this very thing. We saw a dozen ridge summits, paved with their THE MOUNTAIN GOAT AS WE SAW HIM 109 droppings, which Norboe and Smith assured us were the winter sleeping-places of goats. In winter goats also seek food upon the bleak ridges from which the snow is continually swept clean by the wind. Up to the time we left the mountains (September 30) the rutting season had not begun. Our guides say it does not begin until December i. The old male goats were living quite apart from the herds of females and young males, and there was not the slightest sign of sexual excitement. The herds were quiet, to the point of dulness. The open pastures between timber-line and the naked rocks of the summits were covered with food, and once below his beloved rocks a goat had only to stoop and take. Often we saw goats lie on their pastures, motionless for hours, unable to eat more. They loved to lie on southern slopes, bathing themselves in the glorious sunshine, and blinking away the hours. Whenever a herd was sighted at rest, it was safe to count upon its remaining there for an hour or two, unless disturbed by a hunter. Everywhere we went, I watched the slides for evi- dences of accidents to goats through being overwhelmed by spring avalanches, but saw none. I closely questioned Charlie Smith and the Norboe brothers, but none of them could recall a single instance of a dead goat in a snow-slide. They said the goats are too wary to be caught. But there are exceptions. Mr. W. Stephen- son writes me from Quesnel Forks, central British Columbia, of a goat which was killed in a snow- slide in May, 1905, in the mountains east of that no CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES town. This is the only record of the kind that ever has come to me, but there is one other of a fearfully injured goat, which I fully believe was hurt in an avalanche. Late in the spring of 1902, when Mr. G. O. Shields was taking photographs in the Rocky Mountains of British Columbia, he found on a small mountain-pasture a goat which for several days remained in one spot. At last his curiosity was aroused, and on procuring a par- ticularly good view of the animal through a powerful field-glass, he found that it had been seriously injured by some accident. " Its face was badly cut and torn," says Mr. Shields, " and a section of its nose some six inches long, extending from about the eyes to the tip of the nose, was an open sore. There was also a wound in one shoulder. I told Mr. Wright, the guide, that I thought it would be best to go up and see what the trouble was with this animal. " He went, and Coleman with him. They easily got within fifty yards of the goat, and found that the entire upper portion of its face [muzzle] had been torn off, and that the nostrils were exposed and bleeding. They naturally concluded that as soon as warm weather and flies came, the goat would die from the effects of its mis- fortune. Accordingly they crawled up, made several photographs of the goat in various positions, then killed it, in order to put it out of its misery." Mr. Shields believes that the carrying away of the goat's face was done in some manner by a snow-slide, in which the goat's head was held very firmly while either THE MOUNTAIN GOAT AS WE SAW HIM iii a sharp-edged rock of large size, or a log, passed over it, grinding away skin and bone, and laying bare the bottom of the nasal passage. It seems that when occasion demands it, the moun- tain goat can swim very well, and does not hesitate to do so. I have already mentioned the spring and fall migrations of goats across the valley of the Flathead, as observed by Mr. W. H. Wright. In making that jour- ney the animals always had to swim the Flathead River. Farther north, in Athabasca, Mr. Wright and Mr. Shields saw the trails of goats that had crossed one of the branches of Athabasca River, by swimming. Beyond doubt it would be possible to learn of many instances of river-swimming by goats. Many authors have written of the " stupidity " of the mountain goat; and on that subject I may as well record here the conclusions of Mr. Phillips, our guides and the writer. First, however, let me correct, — for British Colum- bia at least, — a trifling error that is rather common in recipes for stalking the mountain goat. Some writers say, " first get above him," etc. We say, spare yourself that trouble ; for it is quite unnecessary. While it is pos- sible to scale all sorts of peaks, and climb above the goat, he who does so (in British Columbia) will find his hunt- ing seriously handicapped by impassable slopes of rock that keep him away from the very points from which he would fain look below. The best way to hunt goats is to stalk them on the level, and shoot them on the square. Mr. Phillips says that in all the goat-hunting of which 112 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES he personally knows, only two goats have been shot from above. Personally I know not how wary goats are in coun- tries wherein they have been much hunted; for the goats of Elk River actually did not know the significance of the report of fire-arms ! This is not necessarily stupidity. Even wolves are " tame " in the far north, where C. J. Jones fought them, and take risks which any southern wolf would regard as suicidal. It takes a little time for a wild species to learn what it is to be shot, and to flee quickly and far from the presence of man. I regard the primitive mountain goat as an animal to whom fear is almost an unknown sensation. He is serenely indififerent to the dangers of crag-climbing and ledge-walking, and to him a five-hundred-foot precipice is no more than a sidewalk to a domestic goat. So long as he has six inches of rough points on which to plant his rubber-like hoofs, he considers the route practicable. Why, then, he would say, should he be timid about a few strange animals which walk upright, but never dare to meet him face to face on the walls? Why should he jump and tremble because he hears a loud noise, like the bang of a big rock falling a hundred feet and ex- ploding on the slide-rock? Among men, the peace- fully minded gentleman naturally assumes that no one will wantonly insult or attack him; therefore he regards his fellows with calmness and serenity, un- armed. The mountain goat has practically no enemies save men and eagles. The grizzly bear knows that Oreamnos is not for him, and for good and sufficient THE MOUNTAIN GOAT AS WE SAW HIM 113 reasons the mountain lion and wolf do their hunting far below him. Truly, the goats we saw at home were unacquainted with fear. They have no nerves! With dogs and men you can corner a goat on a ledge, and hold him there for an hour or two. He will get very angry, and grit his teeth, and perhaps kill several of your dogs, but he will not get " rattled," and he will neither fall off nor leap off to certain death, as any deer surely will do under such circumstances. There are some men, and also some animals, who do not become panic-stricken, even when they are being killed; and of the latter I think the mountain goat is one. We like a " nervy " man, or a nervy animal, — ^which in common parlance means an individual without nerves ! Fifty years ago the grizzly bear was an animal which knew not fear of any living thing; and then he was Great. To-day the grizzly is a quitter. In nine cases out of every ten, the moment he sees a man, he runs from him, frantically. A cotton-tail rabbit does not turn tail more quickly or more thoroughly than he. He is wiser than he was; but we don't respect him as much as we did fifty years ago. The mountain goat seems to have rather dull visual powers. We think so because he does not seem to see us as soon as we discover him, or at least does not mani- fest fear by running from us. But it may be that he does see us, as quickly as a deer or sheep, or bear; but having only a fraction of their suspicion of man, he does not move off until he feels really forced to do so. Small 114 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES as its eyes are, a grizzly is very keen-sighted ; and I can see no reason for believing that the goat is of dull vision simply because he is not ever ready to run at the slight- est alarm. More than once we had positive proof that the mountain goat does not take alarm and run from man the moment his presence is detected. On the day I killed my grizzly bear, Charlie Smith and I rode to Goat Pass to inspect our cache of provisions and other things, half in the hope of finding a silver-tip in the act of robbing us. Besides ourselves and our two horses, the dog was with us, and between men, horses and dog there certainly was a variety of what Mr. Seton aptly calls " man scent." When we reached our cache, from which we over- looked the head gorge of Goat Creek, we saw a billy goat feeding on the fearfully steep declivity which comes down from Phillips Peak. " That would be our goat, if we wanted him, Charlie." " You could surely knock him from here," said Charlie. " I wonder if he ain't ever going to go! " " Can it be that he don't see us? " "If he ain't blind he must see us; and unless he's got an awful cold in his head, he must smell us, too." For fully five minutes, I should think, that goat kept on feeding. At last, however, as we were mounting to ride on, he left off, and started to climb on up the slope, — not exactly in alarm, but in a state of what judges call " reasonable doubt." THE MOUNTAIN GOAT AS WE SAW HIM 115 As might be expected of an animal that is born and reared amid appalling dangers of many kinds, the moun- tain goat is a creature of philosophic mind. Through sheer necessity, he is much given to original thinking; and like all thoughtful animals, his mental processes and his moods and tenses are highly interesting. Watch him closely, day after day, and you will soon conclude that the term " stupid " does not apply to him. Let us see whether, with our slight knowledge of him, we can in a small measure put ourselves in his mental place. In the first place, Oreamnos has chosen the rugged crags at and above timber-line as the ground best calcu- lated to enable him to escape from his wild-animal ene- mies, — the bears, pumas and wolves. From these his rugged heights render him measurably secure. When danger threatens, and he climbs up or down to the shel- tering arms of the steepest precipice he can find, no wild creature without wings dares to follow him. Unfortu- nately, however, his evolution did not take into account the necessity of adequate provisions for safety from the modern rifleman. And how could it? There is no such thing as safety for any wild creature, save under man's own laws. In times of danger the elk, the moose and deer gen- erally stampede wildly over the face of Nature, without much thought. Usually they are able to run straight away from the hunter. To them the great desideratum is speed for the first mile. But not so the goat. He must find a retreat accessible to him, but inaccessible to his pursuer. He must disappear as quickly as possible, ii6 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES but he must also avoid getting into a cul-de-sac from which he cannot escape. All these requirements make a goat think. He must look ahead, and plan out his line of retreat, or come to grief. A deer has the quick dash and elan of a cavalry- man ; but the goat figures things out carefully, on scien- tific principles, like a general of artillery. Some hunters of wild goats have called the goat a stupid animal, because he does not quickly comprehend the deadliness of man. But is that proof that he really is stupid? Let us see. No mountain hunter will call the mountain sheep a stupid animal. In regions wherein the sheep have been shot at, and have learned that a " bang " means a rifle, and a rifle means a hunter, the big-horn is a very alert and wary animal. In such regions the successful chase of the mountain sheep demands the qualities that make up a first-class sportsman, — endurance, judgment, and skill with the rifle. But how is it in countries wherein the wild sheep have not been hunted by man, and know nothing of white hunters and fire-arms? Ask Mr. Charles Sheldon, Mr. Carl Rungius, Mr. James H. Kidder and Mr. Thomas D. Leonard about the sheep which they found so abundant in the Kenai Peninsula, in the Yukon Territory and on the Stickine River. They will tell you that the sheep which they hunted did not know the meaning of a rifle-shot; that they only partially realized the deadliness of man; that when a flock was fired at, the sheep threw up their heads, and gazed and hesi- tated, until often five shots could be fired at a bunch THE MOUNTAIN GOAT AS WE SAW HIM 117 before it finally realized the danger, and ran out of range. That was not due to dulness of mind, or stupidity. It was due to a lack of information^ — ignorance of exist- ing facts. Take the record of our four days on Goat Pass, where we camped literally on the goat's highway be- tween two groups of mountains. The first day we saw forty-seven goats, all of which saw us ; and three of them ran through our camp. On the third day we saw forty- two goats, and were seen by all of them. We did not fire a shot on those mountains until the third day, when we killed two goats. On the fourth day it was remarked with surprise that all the goats had " left the country! " This was literally true. Word had been passed around among the ten or twelve flocks originally living there, that there was danger afoot; and as if by magic, one hundred and ten of the one hundred and fifteen goats we had seen simply vanished! The only bunch that re- mained was a flock of five nannies and kids which were isolated on a rugged mountain that ran off due west- ward from the main chain of peaks on which we were. Evidently they did not get the word which alarmed all the rest. We had fired our rifles in one spot only, which was at the extreme northern end of that goat-infested area. Our guides remarked, " We've got to get out of here, and look for goats somewhere else, if we want to find any more." Mr. F. B. Wellman, of Banff, a very observing guide, who has seen much of goat and sheep hunting, does not ii8 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES regard the sheep as any more wary and keen-sighted than the goat. He has seen large herds of goats post sentinels who watched for danger so keenly and intelligently that the approach of a hunter within shooting-distance was quite impossible. The sentries watch in every direction. Mr. Wellman advanced the theory that the goat seems easier to stalk than the sheep because the coat of the for- mer is so conspicuous that the hunter can see it long before it sees him ; and it is also easy to keep it in view while stalking. On the other hand, all the colors of the big-horn match so well with his surroundings that he is difficult to locate, and thereby often is enabled to see the hunter before the hunter sees him! I think this conclu- sion is very reasonable, and entirely correct. In my opinion, no animal which can live all the year round, and prosper, above timber-line in the British Co- lumbian Rockies, can rightly be called stupid. If the mountain goat were not a good observer, a good rea- soner, and at all times cool and level-headed, he would continually be coming to grief. He would be drowned by freshets, or carried down by snow-combs and ava- lanches, or blown off precipices, or caught napping by grizzly bears. But none of those unpleasant things hap- pen unto him. Excepting the musk-ox, the mountain goat is the only North American hoofed animal which does not lose its head when brought to bay by dogs or men. If you round up a deer, elk, moose or caribou on a narrow ledge, or on the edge of a precipice, it will cheerfully leap off into eternity in order to escape the terrors of man THE MOUNTAIN GOAT AS WE SAW HIM 119 and dog. Mr. Wellman says that sometimes a wounded sheep on the edge of a cliff will throw itself over, but that no goat will do this. The latter believes that one goat on a ledge is worth two in mid-air. With mar- vellous coolness he stands fast, and waits for something favorable to turn up. If he can charge the dogs that annoy him, and gore them to death, or toss them off into space, he will gladly do so; but if he cannot, he " stands pat " on his ledge, grits his teeth and stamps with vexa- tion, and says, " Well, what are you going to do about it? " Among white hunters, it is not considered either fair or sportsman-like to shoot a goat or sheep that has been " cornered " on a ledge, unless it is wounded. The action of a female goat photographed in August, 1905, on Ptarmigan Mountain, B. C, by Professor Henry F. Osborn, reveals much of goat character, bear- ing especially upon courage and affection. On the edge of a ragged precipice, which with great care was prac- ticable for goats, the old nanny and her four-months-old kid were overtaken, and brought to bay. The way down to safety was so steep and dangerous that it could be taken only with caution and judgment ; but if the mother had disregarded her offspring, she could instantly have found safety for herself by going down where no dog could follow her. With the dog so close at hand, the mother decided that she could not lead the way down, for fear her off- spring would be seized before it left the summit. She therefore faced the dog, with the kid behind her, and several times attempted to charge her tormentor. But lao CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES the dog was alert, and easily kept out of the way. As long as the dog bayed the pair, the mother goat deter- minedly but patiently stood her ground. This lasted for some minutes. Finally Professor Osborn called off the dog, whereupon the mother-goat lost no time in climb- ing down the precipice, with her offspring following close behind.* Excepting the musk-ox and female grizzly bear, what other American animal would have taken such risks for its young, or would have acted so bravely and so sensibly? Of course it is to be expected that any wild animal will to the best of its ability defend its young against the attacks of other animals. In the spring of 1905, Mr. Charles L. Smith saw a female goat successfully defend her kid from a golden eagle which sought to seize it. The goat stood close beside her young, and whenever the eagle swooped, and sought to seize the kid, the mother reared on her hindlegs, and with her horns made thrust after thrust at the eagle. In a short time the eagle aban- doned its attempt. The mountain goat is not only sublimely courageous in climbing, and in traversing precipices, but as occasion requires, it is also a bold and effective fighter. Those who know the limit of its temper can judge of the risks of life and limb which Mr. Phillips ran when he faced * A full account of this remarkable experience, written by Professor Osborn, and fully illustrated, will be found in the Tenth Annual Report of the New York Zoological Society. The Ninth Annual Report, of the same series, contains an admirable illustrated paper on " The Mountain Goat,'' by Mr. Madison Grant. THE MOUNTAIN GOAT AS WE SAW HIM 121 an angry " billy " on a two-foot ledge, at a distance of six feet or less, in taking a series of photographs of the animal. One determined charge, and one fierce upward thrust of those sharp horns, would have thrown the dar- ing photographer off the ledge to instant death. The fighting qualities of this remarkable animal are best illustrated by the records of actual occurrences. For a number of years Mr. Arthur B. Fenwick has main- tained a large ranch about fourteen miles north of Fort Steele, British Columbia. Being an ardent sportsman and nature-lover he has seen much of the mountain goats, sheep, bears and other animals that literally sur- round him. In response to an inquiry, Mr. Fenwick wrote me as follows : " As to the fighting capacity of a full-grown billy goat, he will, with a little luck, kill almost anything. The story I told Mr. Van Nostrand related to an occur- rence on Joseph's Prairie, where Cranbrook now stands. A full-grown billy goat happened to stray out there, and old Chief Isadore, who was camped there, saw it. He and two other Indians thought that with horses, dogs and ropes they could catch the animal, alive. I think fifteen dogs left the camp for the goat. A little later a squaw saw that they were having a bad mix-up, and ran out to the Indians with a rifle. One of them shot the goat. All but two of the dogs were killed on the spot, or died very shortly. It was with the greatest difficulty that the Indians saved their horses from getting punct- ured by those terrible little horns. " I will tell you another fact, which without the ex- 122 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES planation you would not believe. A goat will sometimes kill a full-grown silver-tip bear! I once found a big goat, dead, which evidently had been killed by a silver- tip, as there were lots of tracks all around, and the goat's back was broken. I thought it queer that the bear had not taken the goat away and buried it, as usual, so I looked around. I found a large silver-tip bear, dead, and all bloated up ; and when I examined him I found that the goat had punched him twice, just back of the heart. He had been able to kill the goat, and had then gone off and died." In the spring of 1905, when Messrs. Chapman and White, of Fort Steele, caught for us the five goat kids received by me at Fort Steele in October, two of their best dogs were killed by goats. Mr. B. T. Van Nostrand, of Brooklyn, described the occurrence, as follows: " They started after the goats with ten dogs. The larger dogs ran up to the old goats, and tried to seize them by their heads. Before the dogs could be called off, the first two were instantly gored, and hurled over a precipice. White said the goats stood their ground, and tossed the dogs so quickly they could hardly realize what had happened until they saw the dogs in the air, bleeding from the wounds made by the horns of the goats. When White and Chapman appeared, the goats moved off. The remaining dogs were able to separate the kids from the rest of the band, and finally they caught five." It seems that sometimes goats kill each other. " Four years ago," continued Mr. Van Nostrand, " I THE MOUNTAIN GOAT AS WE SAW HIM 123 was shooting in about the same locality as that in which your goats were caught, and there I witnessed the finish of a fight between two large billies. I had shot at a mountain sheep ram on the sky-line, and to find out the effect of my shot I climbed to the summit. At the top I sat down to rest, and look for the ram, and enjoy the grandeur of the view. As I sat there motionless, two goats came around a corner of rock only about fifty yards away from me. They were walking rather fast, and whenever the goat in the rear caught up with the one before him, he gave it a blow with his head. It did not seem to be a vigorous butt, and at first I thought it was play. They were making a low, peculiar sound, such as I cannot describe in words. " In a very short time, one of the goats lay down behind a large rock, so that I could see only its head. The other goat stood, and looked at the one lying down. Just then they saw me, and this seemed to stop the fight, for the standing goat began to move away. I fired and killed him; but to my surprise the other goat lay still. I could not hit him from where I was without spoiling his head, so I climbed around to get a better shot. Finally I got quite close, and had a good general view of him. Then he stood up, took one or two steps, and stood still. I then saw that he was bleeding around his neck, that one flank was badly torn, and that some of his intestines were hanging out until they almost touched the ground ! He was so far gone he could scarcely stand, and to end his troubles quickly, I shot him. " That was the only fight to the death that I ever 124 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES saw among wild animals, and it was done quite differ- ently from what I expected. There was no pawing of the ground, and no frenzied charging. One goat quietly walked up to the other, and gave him a fierce thrust. The victorious goat was not even scratched. I presume his first thrust was fatal to the victim." But there are times when even the icy-nerved goat becomes thoroughly frightened. In questioning Mr. Phillips on this point he related the following incident: " The only time I ever saw a goat really frightened, and show fear, was when Charlie Smith and I were hunting on the head of Wilson Creek. We had sighted a grizzly bear, and were following him up the side of a mountain and over the summit. It took us two hours to climb a distance that he covered in one. Near the sum- mit the bear's trail led us through a little notch, and past the base of a pinnacle of bare rock, about two hundred feet high, that ran up very much like a cathedral spire. " Now it happened that as the bear passed through the little notch he frightened an old, long-bearded billy goat, who immediately started up the pinnacle as hard as he could go, and climbed clear to its summit. And there the old fellow stood, or rather hung, in a most ridiculous attitude. His front feet were hooked over the eastern edge of the point, like a man looking over the peak of a steep house-roof, and holding on by his hands. His body and hindlegs were well down on the other side of the pinnacle, and completely overhung a fright- ful precipice. " He was so interested in the bear that he paid no THE MOUNTAIN GOAT AS WE SAW HIM 125 attention to us. We talked to him, and tried to attract his attention, but he would not even look at us. He had the most beautiful set of whiskers that I ever saw on a goat, and as the wind blew through them they waved in the breeze. Evidently, the old fellow could see the bear, — below him, and in front. He moved his head in various directions, peering about, twisting his head and squinting like a near-sighted man at a variety show. Four other goats had taken to the high rocks on account of that same bear." Mr. Phillips has seen goats climb, without being frightened, to the very summits of lofty peaks, and far above their food supply, apparently for amusement only. He has also seen flocks of goats lie on solitary patches of snow in preference to bare earth and rocks. Among hunters and guides who live in the mountain goat's country, it is a common belief that goats (like men) sometimes lose their lives through going upon pre- cipitous ledges from which they cannot escape. It is difficult to understand how a goat can reach a point on the face of a cliff without carefully climbing to it, either up or down, or how it can become impossible for him to retrace his steps. That such things are possible, how- ever, is proven by a tragedy actually witnessed by Mr. James Brewster, of Banff. Mr. Brewster relates that quite recently, while out with a hunting-party in the mountains north-west of Banff, they climbed to the top of a rugged mountain, and chased a band of goats around its summit. The goats went down over the edge of a rock wall which 126 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES overhung so much that the animals could not be seen from above. Later on, when they descended to their camp in the valley, and looked up at the mountain wall, they saw their lost goats, five in number, perched far aloft, on a narrow ledge. When night descended, the goats were still there. The next morning, the hunters were surprised at finding that during the night the animals had not moved; nor did they move during that entire day. Then Mr. Brewster and his companions became convinced that the goats had trapped themselves, and were unable either to go on or retreat. The band consisted of two adult goats and three young ones. Naturally it was the older ani- mals that led the way into the danger, and it was the belief of the party that the adult goats could not retreat the way they came because the young ones blocked the way, and were unable to go back. It was thought that the ledge was so narrow the goats could not turn upon it, and the kids were unable to back out. We know that a young goat can easily turn on a twelve-inch ledge, pro- vided the wall does not overhang; but an overhanging wall can make turning impossible. Mr. Brewster and his party became so interested in the fate of the trapped goats that they remained in that camp long enough to witness the end of the tragedy. One by one, those poor goats fell from their ledge, and were dashed to death on the slide-rock, hundreds of feet below. The hunters saw one of them fall ; but the most of them fell at night. The last one fell on the tenth day after they took refuge on the fatal shelf. CHAPTER IX TIMBER-LINE AND SUMMIT One-Eyed Men in the Mountains — A Mountain Savant — A Climb in False Notch — Foot and Nerve Exhaustion — A Daring Goat — Ex- periments — The Component Parts of Mountain-Sides — Tempera- ture Record of a Climber — A Great Basin and a Bull Elk — A Tree Scarred by a Mountain Ram. " Here in this workshop of the Sun, Where Nature hews, and chips recoil. Note well the work designed, or done ; Behold the Mountains at their toil ! " — The Sun's Workshop. The world is full of one-eyed travellers. One of the strange things about such mountains as those of British Columbia is the wide variation between the impressions which they produce upon different people. I know a miner and prospector to whom the finest mountain- range is merely a place in which to look for signs of ore. There are sportsmen who see nothing in mountains -save what appears over the sights of their rifles. There are photographers who see nature only as it is revealed in their " finder," " stopped down to aperture No. 32, one- twenty-fifth of a second exposure." Before me at this moment there lies a book about mountains; but it is only a book of heights and depths, scaled or to be scaled. Its author was blind to the glories 117 128 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES of mountain vegetation, and to the ever-interesting mam- mal and bird fauna of the steeps. The works and ways of Nature at timber-line held absolutely nothing of spe- cial interest to him, save as they furnished things to climb over. He was interested in forests only as they burned, and their smoke obscured the view of summits to be climbed. In a volume of more than four hundred pages the author devotes half a page to the flora of a magnificent domain of mountains, and three pages to their animal life! Really, is it not strange? Often when in the tropics I lamented my lack of botanical knowledge, but not half so much as I deplored it in the Columbian Rockies. To pass over twice in one day the uppermost limits of perhaps fifty species of plants and trees, and know of them so very little, was at times really depressing. Each of the few species which I did recognize was as welcome as the face of a friend at a crowded reception. To me, Charlie Smith was truly a guide, philosophei and friend, and at all times a source of intellectual com- fort. He loves the mountains so well that no money consideration can tempt him to leave them. He loves them in storm or in calm, amid the terrors of winter as well as the delights of spring, summer and fall. Once while resting on a lofty summit, with a magnificent pano- rama spread out at our feet, and stretching away to the Continental Divide, he said to me: " I have had chances to go into business, and in some of them I am sure I could have made money. Possibly I could have become moderately rich. But what would TIMBER-LINE AND SUMMIT 129 all the money of a millionaire be to me if it took me away from the mountains that I love? No amount of money in a business office could make up to me what I would lose in giving up this country. No rich man can get out of his money more satisfaction in life than I find in these mountains; and here I mean to stay until I die." Charlie is a strange, and even remarkable, combina- tion. He loves steep mountains like another Whymper, and is a very bold and level-headed climber. He loves all animal life, and is not only a keen observer, but his accuracy in observing is grateful and comforting. He loves tree-life and plant-life with the taste of a born botanist. He is a fine hunter and trapper, brave, but sensibly cautious on the trail, and completely free from the boastful and intolerant vein which spoils many a good woodsman. Like most of the mountain men whom I have known intimately, he is clean-minded and high- minded, and as a narrator and describer I have never among frontiersmen known his equal. When he tells a story, he makes you see it as in a moving picture; and he writes with wonderful ease. I urged Charlie to write out the fascinating stories of adventure and chapters of wild-animal lore that he gradually unfolded to me, and offer them to the maga- zines which are always on the lookout to discover new and fresh springs of literary refreshment. At first he felt that he " could not write well enough " ; but as a matter of conscience and duty, both to him and the pub- lic, I urged him until he took courage, and decided to try. I30 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES The foregoing "appreciation" is in no sense a di- gression, for Charlie Smith was far more interesting and noteworthy than any of the mountains up which he led me. Every sportsman knows that the occasions where four men can profitably hunt together are few and far be- tween. Mr. Phillips usually went out with Mack Nor- boe. John Norboe made various special scouting trips for the general welfare, and Charlie Smith and I worked together. After the great day with goats, on Phillips Peak, we devoted our energies to hunting for grizzly bears; and in quest of them we went into all sorts of places. Immediately after camping in Avalanche Val- ley, our first care was to hunt down the valley, through the ribbon of green timber, six miles or so straight away to the base of Roth Mountain; and although we found about a dozen or fifteen rubbing-trees, where bears had stood up to scratch their backs, we saw no bears. Continuously we watched the open ground of the "slides" for bears feeding; and as often as we could manage it, we climbed to some new summit, in order to view a new basin, new rock walls, more slides, and more new country far beyond. In such a region as that is, to hunt is to climb; and to climb is usually to go above timber-line before you stop. I was frequently surprised by the differences between mountain sides and summits that one would naturally expect to find alike. Take False Notch, for instance, about two miles above Camp Hornaday, which came about through my initiative. Timber-Line in Winter Mr. Phillips and Guide Smith on snowshoes, carrying their entire outfit. TIMBER-LINE AND SUMMIT 131 One afternoon as Charlie and I were returning from several hours of climbing to look at the goat remains on Phillips Peak, the trail led across some slide-rock which gave us an open view upward toward the west. In an evil moment, I saw to the westward a ridge that was heavily timbered quite to its summit ; and seeing no land higher up, I rashly concluded it was a low pass. So I said, " Charlie, it doesn't look far up to the top of that divide. Suppose we climb up, and take a look over the other side, toward Bull River." Charlie hesitated two or three seconds, looked at the sun, then quietly answered, " All right. . . . We'll strike up on the right of this slide, and have easy going." We struck up, and the climb through the green tim- ber was all right. But when we reached what I had thought was the summit of the divide, behold ! we stood at the mouth of a big, bare basin between the two peaks, beyond which there rose a roof of the steepest and most difficult slide-rock that I found on that trip. We were at timber-line, and exactly half-way up to the real summit! I felt as if that notch had deliberately deceived me. After a brief rest, we crossed the bottom of the basin, chose the best line of ascent, and started up. Never shall I forget that climb. The mountain was frightfully steep, and from basin-bottom to summit, the slope was covered with slide-rock of the best possible size to roll under a climber's foot, and throw him down, " Be very careful of your footing here," said Charlie, 132 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES very quietly. " Don't make a misstep. A roll down here might be pretty serious." There was no doubt about it. A genuine fall on that treacherous stuff, either backward or sidewise, might easily send a man plunging downward so swiftly that there would be no stopping short of the bottom. The slide-rock was mostly in angular chunks about the size of furnace coal, and almost as hard as flint. It reminded me of the inch-and-a-half broken trap-rock that we use in the Zoological Park in surfacing our roads. Imagine the steepest house-roof you ever saw bestrewn with that stuff, ready to roll at the touch of a foot, and you will know what that slope was like as a place to climb. In taking a step upward, the foot had to win a firm resting-place on the loose rock before the body's weight was thrown upon it; for each step had to be a success. The strain on the ankles was really very severe, — and on the mind it was equally so. In a party like ours, no one wants to be a spoil-sport, and get hurt, tie up the whole hunt, and possibly be carried out in a package strapped to a horse's back. Accidents are forbidden luxuries! I suppose that slope was about six hundred feet long. Charlie kindly offered to carry my rifle for me, and even insisted upon it; but up to that time I had carried my rifle every step of my hunting ways, and I elected to stay with it, up or down. As we neared the summit, we saw that we were ap- proaching a " knife-edge." It was not a level knife- edge, either, but sloped sharply, and at one place broke down very abruptly for several feet. It was then clear TIMBER-LINE AND SUMMIT 133 that the narrow sky-line was the edge of a precipice, that there was no such thing as hunting beyond, and it looked as if no one could walk on the knife-edge for more than a hundred yards or so. Feeling that I had been grossly deceived by that notch, I decided to expend no further energy upon it, unless something more than the summit were to be gained by it. Twenty-five years ago I would have fol- lowed Charlie to the last gasp ; but as it was, I shame- lessly allowed him to climb on up to the top, alone. The mental and physical exertion of placing my feet about six hundred times in that loose stufif, each time so care- fully that my foot would hold without the possibility of a slide or a roll, had so completely exhausted both my nerves and my ankles that I had neither patience nor strength for another useless fifty feet. I learned that a man who is reasonably fresh can do climbing that is almost impossible to him when his feet and his nerves are equally exhausted. It is very trying to climb for an hour with a feeling that one false step, one turned ankle or one treacherous rock will lead swiftly to a battered body and broken bones. Charlie climbed on up with the sang-froid of a moun- tain goat, and soon stood on the sky-line, looking over. " How wide is it up there? " " Well, in some places it's three feet; but in one place it's nearly twenty." " Anything to do on the other side? " " No ; I guess not. No good ground, no game in sight. There's no use in your coming up here." 134 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES Climbing down seemed quite as dangerous as climb- ing up. In descending dangerous slopes over loose rock, I always found myself looking forward to a point of altitude low enough that a fall from it would not quite! kill a man; then to the point that meant not more than two broken limbs; then to the one-limb point; to bat- tered knees only, and so on lo the bottom. With shoe- soles less wooden in their stiffness, and with better nails in the bottom, I would have felt very differently in those mountains. Perhaps I should note here a few facts regarding the best clothing for a mountain-climber. Naturally, a ten- derfoot needs to have all conditions in his favor, but it is likely that few succeed in securing a perfect outfit. The shoes should be high, to protect and support the ankles, but the soles should not be too thick, or inflex- ible. The soles should yield somewhat to the rocks; and they must be well studded with sharp-pointed hobnails, screwed into the leather. In rough work and plenty of it, two pairs of good shoes will last but little more than a month. The trousers should be knickerbockers of gray mack- inaw (wool), and the openings at the knee should be six inches long, with buttons, in order that in severe climbing they can be opened wide. With these, woollen stockings are necessary. Suspenders are absolutely neces- sary, for the belt must be worn loose. The outer shirt, of gray flannel, should be of medium weight. The neck demands a large silk handkerchief, of some dark, neu- tral color. TIMBER-LINE AND SUMMIT 135 As we climbed down, a solitary billy goat came over the peak in front of us, beyond the basin, and treated us to a wonderful performance. From the side of the peak a thin shoulder ran out toward the Avalanche Valley. It was about three hundred feet high. The " formation " stood on edge, quite perpendicular, and there was a band of shaly stratification whichhad weathered a trifle below the general surface of the shoulder. I saw a goat appear on the crest of it, and start down what looked like a pathway of smooth and perpendicular rock. " Charlie, just see what that goat is doing! " We settled back against the slide- rock, and adjusted our glasses. "Well! " exclaimed the guide. " He might as well be standing on his head! " Coolly and deliberately, without any show either of haste or hesitation, that goat walked down the place that looked perpendicular. Not even once did he make a false step, or hesitate. Over the worst places he came down two feet at a time. He reached down with his forefeet, planted them far apart, then slid his hindfeet down between them until they too secured a good hold. It looked as if his hindquarters rubbed against the clifif; and beyond ques- tion, his rear dew-claws and the lowest joints of his hind- legs did so. Over the lower third of the descent, where the grade was less steep, and the pathway offered rougher footing, the goat calmly walked down to the bottonj, crossed the slide-rock and turned off up the basin, toward a patch 136 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES of grazing-ground. Very soon it passed behind a point that jutted out from our ridge, and for a moment dis- appeared. Cautiously we descended a short distance, and again sighted the animal. It was quietly grazing, and not more than one hundred and fifty yards away. We sat down, and watched him until we were tired ; and then I decided to test his ears, his eyesight and his courage. Although we were in plain view of him, he paid no attention to us. I whistled, faintly at first; but he took no notice. I whistled again, loud enough to have startled any deer feeding at the same distance, and sent it flying; but still no notice. Then I gave three or four very shrill blasts, in a manner specially developed in my boyhood. The goat raised his head, and looked about with an air of curiosity, but stirred not from his position, and mani- fested no alarm. I presume he thought that a whistling marmot had found out how to whistle with two fingers in his mouth. So long as we remained motionless, the goat was quite indifferent to our presence. When I left off whist- ling, he went on feeding. At last we rose quietly, and moved on down; and then he decided to be going. I said " Hello," rather loudly, but he merely went on at a moderately fast walk. When I shouted, he hastened perceptibly; and finally, when I yelled at him, he really took alarm. But even then he did not leap, and stam- pede in a panicky way, as a deer does. He simply trotted away as fast as he could, climbed the divide before him at its lowest point, and disappeared over its crest. TIMBER-LINE AND SUMMIT 137 When Charlie and I reached the bottom of the basin, we examined the goat's pathway, and, as we expected, found it not so nearly perpendicular as it looked from in front. The angle of it seemed to be about forty-five de- grees from perpendicular. The wonder was not that the goat managed to descend in safety over a course on which a man could not have travelled ten feet, but that it came down with such contemptuous indifference and ease. I am tempted to make note of one other climb that Charlie Smith and I enjoyed together, still in quest of new grounds and grizzly bears. To me the wonders of it, and the weirdness of it, never will be forgotten while I live. Around the head of Avalanche Creek there was a regular nest of " notches " and " divides," and " passes " by courtesy so called. We explored each one of them, always climbing, and although we found little killable big game, we were so royally entertained by that grand picture-book of Nature that we felt richly repaid. From first to last I climbed about fifteen mountains in that country, and next to the grandeur of the scenery, its most striking feature was the marvellous diversity of Nature's handiwork. On no two mountains did we find the vege- tation, the ground and the rocks really alike; and this diversification continued to the very last hour of the trip. Bear with me a moment, and I will set down, as in a catalogue, the salient features of interest that one passes through, or over, in the course of one day's climb in that Wonderland. I take them all from the notes of 138 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES the day wherein Charlie and I climbed into the second big notch south of Phillips Peak. (i) First came the luxuriant, balsamy, sweet-smell- ing " green timber " of the valley, which climbed half a mile or more up the steep slope. In this the rich earth is smooth, and covered deeply with the dry needles of Canadian white spruce, jack pine, and balsam. The fine- leafed, columnar larches are turning the color of old gold, and the leaves of the quaking asp tell their name by their incessant quivering. Just then the frost was busily painting them Indian red. (2) Above the heavy green timber comes the dwarf spruces, — ^which I think must be of a species different from the great tree, — and the patches of yellow-willow brush. (3) There are patches of hard, bare earth, usually shaly, and often so hard and smooth they are not only uncomfortable, but even dangerous. In freezing weather they must be carefully avoided ; for they give no foothold. (4) The deep gullies that so often score the moun- tain-sides, cut down through decomposing shale, are a prominent feature, and in traversing the side of a steep mountain in freezing weather they must be crossed with the utmost care. At such times, our guides regard them as decidedly dangerous. (5) Above the brush-belt, often comes the mossy pasture-grounds, in steps, like great stairs that have been covered with a mosslike carpet of Dryas octopitala three inches thick. (6) The " slides," or avalanche tracks, are every- TIMBER-LINE AND SUMMIT 139 where present, sometimes bare of trees and bushes, and nicely set in grass, and again thinly covered with young trees. (7) In places are found large patches of fine, loose earth, perfectly bare. (8) Slide-rock is always to be expected, sometimes coming from sources that are visible, and again de- scended from goodness knows where. High up, it is usually more finely broken than lower down. Near the top of a steep divide, or " pass," it is common to find a wide belt of bad slide-rock (called " scree " by the pro- fessional mountain-climbers, and " talus " by geologists), and often the top also is completely capped with it. (9) Occasionally the climber strikes a stretch of small stones, or, better still, an acre or two of loose shale, which is very safe and comfortable while it lasts. Down a good stretch of this one can plough along fast and fearlessly, as one descends the ashy side of Vesuvius, covering two yards at a stride. (10) When it comes to snow, and ice, — that is an- other story, and a long one. It was through a bewildering succession of such feat- ures as the above that Charlie and I made a long and arduous, though nowise dangerous climb, to the top of a pass that looked over into the Elk River water-shed. It was a cold day, and the changes of temperature that a climber experiences in one day were absurdly numerous. I started up wearing my elk-skin hunting-shirt, a silk muffler around my neck, and two suits of underclothing. At the head of the creek we took our last drink of I40 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES water, and began to climb upward through the green timber. There being no wind to speak of, the exercise warmed us. At 500 feet up, my gloves came off, were labelled " not wanted," and stowed away in the hold. At 700 feet, off came my silk muffler. At 1,000 feet, my hunting-shirt was voted a superflu- ous luxury, taken off, and strapped upon my back. At 1,500 feet, my shirt-sleeves were turned up as high as they could go. At 1,800 feet, all my shirts were opened wide at the neck, and we had to wait for more air to blow along. At 2,000 feet an icy-cold wind struck us hard, and the mercury began to fall. Collars were hurriedly closed, and sleeves unreefed and made snug. To take off one's cap to mop away perspiration was like thrusting one's head into a pail of ice-water. At about 2,300 feet above Avalanche Creek, we reached the summit. It was as cold as Cape Sabine, and the icy wind blew half a gale. The rapid evaporation of the perspiration in my clothing made my body feel like the cylinder of an ice-cream freezer. With all haste, we flung on our outer garments, put on our gloves, and hurried over the sky-line to get out of the wind. A short distance down the eastern side we found an old goat-bed, in a little depression. In this we crouched, to scan the magnificent landscape below, and if possible to get less cold. The grandeur of what we saw instantly made us forget the icy wind. TIMBER-LINE AND SUMMIT 141 The summit behind us was not wider than a city lot, and in one magnificent sweep of half a mile, without a big rock or a tree, it swept down, down, down to the bot- tom of a huge, green basin in which a grand army could have encamped. On our right, and close at hand, there rose high above us, — and also dropped far below, — the most awful wall of rock that I saw in British Columbia. From bottom to top its perpendicular face was, I am sure, not less than a thousand feet. From it, there was an almost con- tinuous rattle of falling rock. Even had we seen a sheep on the face of it, we would not have had the heart to shoot the animal and see it fall off. The impressive height of that grim wall was strongly emphasized by the softer details of the great basin far below. It was fitting that the grandest precipice should rise from the grandest basin in those mountains, and cradle at its foot a tiny lake that was like a big emerald. The world below us was unrolled like a map. The outlines of the dark-green timber, as yet untouched by fire, and the intervening patches of light yellow-green grass, hemmed in on two sides by frowning walls of dark- gray rock and bounded in the distance by a succession of mountains running thirty miles away to the snowy peaks on the Continental Divide, made a grand and impressive picture. For half an hour we sat with our backs against the mountain-side, absorbing the magnificent panorama into our systems. We spoke little. All at once I saw some- thing new, and looked quickly at Charlie. At the same 142 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES instant his face lighted up with a gleam of intelligence, and he looked sharply at me. "An elk, Charlie?" After a little pause, with his glass at his eyes, he answered, "Yes; a full-grown bull. . . . That's the fellow whose trail we found yesterday in False Notch." Far down in the bottom of the basin, where the green timber halted at the foot of our slope, an elk had walked out into the middle of a little grass-plat, as if to give us the pleasure of seeing him. He carried a good pair of antlers, and he looked big and beautiful. It was indeed a keen pleasure to see a living, wild, adult bull elk in British Columbia, and to know for fair that even there the species is not yet extinct. For about five minutes the majestic animal grazed on the grass-plat, then marched to the edge of his little glade, and browsed on some of the green branches that he found there. Finally, like a dissolving view he van- ished in the thick green timber, and we saw him no more. It was the only elk that was seen on that trip. There was no other game visible in the great basin; and we voted unanimously that it was out of the ques- tion to descend that long eastward slope, hunt through the basin, and recross the mountain to camp, all in one afternoon. We decided to hunt back home by skirting the east- ern mountain-side of Avalanche Creek, at timber-line, and thereby have a good look for both bear and sheep. First we went to look at the carcasses of the four A Big-Horn Ram's Signature Goat Lick, on the Southern Slope of Cyclorama Ridge See page 239. TIMBER-LINE AND SUMMIT 143 goats killed on Phillips Peak, and finding no bear-signs about them, we swung off on our long mountain-side tramp. By that time, the day had grown stormy. The west wind had borne up a mass of leaden clouds that com- pletely obscured the sun; but fortunately they flew well above us. It was evident that snow was on the wings of the wind. Whenever we crossed a wedge of green timber we went at a swift pace, but at every basin, and every open pathway of an avalanche, we hunted very cautiously. Before our progress, that mountain-side unrolled like a panorama, in an endless chain of timbered ridges, hol- low basins, steep slopes, ridges of slide-rock, and frown- ing cliffs looming up into the flying clouds. Once we passed a very curious feature. From the side of a cliff, half way from basin-bottom to summit, there came out a huge mass of slide-rock that looked like an enormous dump from a mountain mine. The level top ran back to the face of the rock wall, and it looked as if cars had run out of the bowels of the mountain, and dumped there ten million tons of broken limestone, in slide-rock sizes. The resemblance was perfect, and I told Charlie to enter the name of that feature as " The Dump." That was an awe-inspiring scramble. Even a sensible dog would have been impressed by the majesty of the rugged rock walls towering heaven- ward; the rugged terrors of the acres and acres of cruel slide-rock; the weird, squawking cries of the Clark's 144 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES crows and Canada jays that circled about us, or perched briefly on the tips of the dead and ragged spruces; the whistling of the cold, raw wind through the pines, and over all the dull gray clouds flying swiftly and silently across the tops of the peaks. We climbed on and on, seeing much but saying little. In a patch of green timber, we found a nut-pine tree that had been butted and badly scarred, by a mountain sheep ram. Its stem was about ten inches in diameter, and about three feet from the ground the horns of a lusty sheep had battered the bark off, quite down to the wood. Two long, elliptical scars were left, with a narrow strip of living bark between them, as a record of the time when a well-fed ram passed that way, and was seized by the boy-like impulse to carve his name in the bark of a tree. This is a favorite pastime of mountain sheep rams during the months of September and October, when they are so full of grass and energy that the mountains seem scarcely big enough to contain them. To scramble for several hours along a steep mountain- side, going always in the same direction, is very wearing upon the ankles, and tends to make one leg shorter than it really ought to be. At the " psychological moment," — ^whatever that may be, — Charlie changed our course, and bore diagonally downward until we struck the bot- tom of Avalanche Valley close to the circle of light that radiated from the blazing logs of our royal camp-fire. And then it began to snow. CHAPTER X ALONE ON A MOUNTAIN Getting Next to Nature— Waterfall Notch— The Pika at Home- Ground - Squirrels and Grizzly Bears — Temptation Goats — Variations between Summits — Fool-Hens and Ptarmigan — Dwarf Spruces — Bull River — Mule-Deer Grounds — Berries of the Moun- tains — Charlie Smith Finds Grizzly-Bear Signs. "O, puny Man, wouldst thou atone For years of swelling ego heart, Go, tread the mountain-top alone. And learn how very small thou art!" — The Spell of the Mountains. If you would get next the soul of Nature, go to meet her as you call upon your sweetheart, — alone. There are times when the presence of one's dearest friend is a distraction. If you would feel the mystic Spell of the Mountains, go into them as Moses did when he met God and received The Law, — alone. If you would know what it is to feel so awed by the panorama of the world that you lose half your desire to find killable game, and for a few hours cease to be a predatory animal, climb a fine mountain all alone. In that way one sees things and feels things that are veiled by the presence of any other human being. The moral uplift that one feels when alone on a wild prairie is magnified five times on a first- class mountain. 146 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES Quite aside from the animal life, the strange vegeta- tion of the mountain heights near timber-line is enough to tempt any one upward. It is far more interesting, yard for yard, than anything one finds in the tropics. On a high mountain, at timber-line one finds only the bravest and the hardiest of Nature's trees, and flowers, and animals. Wherever vegetation climbs up in genu- ine luxuriance to six thousand feet, and is suddenly and rudely stopped short at seven thousand feet, the finish is as keenly interesting as finishes generally are. It is good to climb up through a living exposition of the survival of the fittest, both in plant life and animal life. Two days after our goat-hunt on Phillips Peak, an incident occurred which caused our little party to scat- ter, for two days. Just before sunset, we saw far aloft, on the sky-line of the mountain range that ran along the eastern side of Avalanche Creek, a band of twelve mountain sheep, all rams. Naturally this exhibit caused quite a sensation in camp, and eventually it produced several important results. Mr. Phillips wished to kill a big ram for the Carnegie Museum, but having had my chance at sheep, in Wyoming, I had vowed to hunt sheep no more. Accordingly, on the following morning, Mr. Phil- lips and the Norboes took packs on their backs, with three days' rations, and departed on a hunt for the rams of the previous day. Charlie Smith went off on a long tramp to look for grizzly-bear signs, for my special bene- fit. Instead of going with him as usual, on that day I o o c o W ALONE ON A MOUNTAIN 147 decided to climb to a certain summit west of camp, on which I had noted from Phillips Peak (opposite), some excellent grounds for mule deer. I felt that I would like to explore those summits all alone, and have a good think, game or no game. As a matter of ordinary precaution, I told Charlie and Huddleston where I intended to go, and asked for any directions that might be helpful. Charlie told me that an old game-trail led around the waterfall I in- tended to strike, and that if I went hither and yon, and thus and so, I would probably strike it. His directions were clear enough, but somehow I have before now found it difficult to make the ground-plan of a wild western landscape fit the specifications of it. This time, however, I resolved to try to do better in that respect. Seldom have I seen in any land a finer day. The sun shone bravely, but at intervals it was partly obscured by fleecy white clouds that briskly drifted up from the west, then passed on over. The air was wondrous clear, and just cold enough to be invigorating. Charlie's one direction which I had so firmly spiked down that it failed to escape, was that I would do well to go as far as possible up the bed of the little creek that came down from my Waterfall Notch. This I did. At first I found it absolutely dry, and the going over'the small, smooth dornicks was rather easy. But in a short time, the dense green timber that filled the valley threw so many tree-trunks across the stream's course that I was obliged to scramble out and take to the easier bank. At that point Charlie's directions were lost in the 148 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES shuffle, like a creek running under slide-rock; biit I hoped they would, streamlike, come to the surface far- ther on. From moment to moment I chose the least dif- ficult route, as does a wild man or a wild beast in mark- ing out a trail for the first time. On the north side of the creek I scrambled through some very much tangled " down timber " amid the " green timber," always going up, of course, and presently emerged upon a five-acre tract of very coarse and cruelly sharp slide-rock. Over that toilsome stretch I went with the attention which such treacherous and dangerous stufif demands, and finally I reached the upper limit of that also. Looking ahead, I saw my waterfall, hard at work pouring a collection of two-inch streams over a fifty-foot precipice, — all of which promptly vanished from sight under the slide-rock that had been carried across the stream-bed. At that time, the fall was not very impres- sive, because the volume of water was too small for grandeur. Still, a natural waterfall in a mountain land- scape is always grateful to the eye, and companionable. As I picked my way upward over the slide-rock, the plaintive, whistling cry of the pika, or little chief " hare," came to me from a chaos of large rocks piled near the edge of a half-acre of weeds. The cry sounds like the word cheap, pitched very high and much prolonged. The cry of this creature is so elusive one seldom can locate it with precision, so making as good a guess as possible, I sat down to wait for the little brother of the rocks to appear. I sat motionless for perhaps ten minutes, and then ALONE ON A MOUNTAIN 149 my small neighbor appeared. Like a modest little gray shadow it seemed to slide out from nowhere to the level top of a chunk of stone, and there halted to observe the world. Except for his short round ears, he looked like a half-grown gray rabbit. I waited for him to go to work at cutting his winter's supply of hay, but he was too delib- erate, and before he began his day's work I was obliged to move on. Let it be remembered at this point that this little creature, so long called the little chief " hare," or crying " hare," is not a hare, nor is it even a member of the Hare and Rabbit Family {Leporides). It is so odd that it stands alone, in a Family limited to its own small self, containing only the pikas. But, small and lonesome though he be, the pika is wise. Neither marten, wol- verine nor grizzly can'dig him out of his slide-rock, and we never once saw a place where a bear had even tried to do so. But the nearest neighbor of the pika has far less wisdom. In many localities around Phillips Peak we found big holes in the ground that had been dug by grizzly bears in quest of Columbia River ground-squirrels.* Indeed, we saw more holes than ground-squirrels. This animal looks like a long-bodied Carolina gray squirrel with a half-sized tail. Usually it is found in the moun- tain basins, and in other open situations below timber- line where the earth- is right for burrowing. We saw between forty and fifty holes, from two to three feet deep, and usually three feet in surface diam- *Citellus columbianus. I50 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES eter, each of which marked a tragedy. Unfortunately, the silly ground-squirrel has not yet learned, either by inheritance or in the "school of the woods "(!), that a three-foot burrow is the same as a pantry shelf to a hun- gry grizzly, and that no Citellus is safe who stops his burrow anywhere above a vertical depth of six feet. With plenty of time, and no end of earth, the foolish ground-squirrel (here called the "gopher"), rests from his digging just under the frost-line. In October the grizzly joyously rips out half a cubic yard of earth, thrusts his deadly hooks on down to the end of the bur- row, and Citellus quickly is converted into half an ounce of bear-oil. Between the grizzlies underground, and the greedy marten above ground, the mountains of British Columbia will not be overrun by ground-sqiiirrels, chipmunks, nor other small mammals until the fangs and claws decrease. But this is a digression. I soon saw that the way around the north side of the fall was very rugged and precipitous, and far too diffi- cult to be chosen voluntarily. Accordingly I crossed the dry stream-bed, and started to climb, by hand and foot, up the extremely steep southern side, which happened to be covered with a good growth of green timber. I had not gone more than a hundred yards when I struck the old trail that Charlie had mentioned. Feeling very complacent over the finding of the right course by plain animal instinct, I blithely swung on up, and soon stood on level ground above the falls. And then I noted how very different the ground be- The Little Haymaker of the Slide-Rock Pika, or Little Chief "Hare." The Grizzly's Lawful Prey — The Columbia River Ground-Squirrel Every year thousands of these are dug out of their burrows and eaten by the grizzlies. ALONE ON A MOUNTAIN 151 yond the fall really was from what it had looked to be, as I saw it from the other side of Avalanche Valley. At a distance of two miles, and a higher elevation, it had seemed that from the waterfall a long, gently sloping ridge ran back for a considerable distance. In actuality, behind the waterfall, I found an eight-acre meadow, nearly level, and covered with rank grass. Beyond that, a steep mountain divide climbs on up. On the north rose an easy peak, and on the south, close at hand, there towered aloft a massive dome of naked rock. On get- ting clear of that, one looks far southward into another big basin, half encircled by a lofty wall of rock that rises sheer to the sky-line. Upon a ledge of that wall, about four hundred yards distant, I saw two billy goats of shootable size, basking in the glorious beams of the morning sun. When I realized how comparatively easy it would be to climb up, south-westerly, swing around under the sky- line and fetch up within easy range of those goats, it gave me a disturbed and anxious feeling. I knew I ought not kill any more goats, having three ; — but a head is a head, and my friends are many. Would I be strong enough to resist that temptation throughout a whole sunny day, with twenty cartridges grinning in my belt like the teeth of a wild animal, and those two old billies mine by act of parliament, if I chose to take them? After a long survey of the animals, I said, " Get thee behind me, Satan! " Resolutely I turned my back upon them, and decided to climb to the summit by way of the gulch that came down farthest away from them, north- 152 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES erly. By walking rapidly I would soon be so far away that it would be too much of a task to return for just one or two old goats. My little gulch came down very steeply, in a course that was almost due south. In each direction from its bed there stretched upward, at the comfortable angle of about thirty degrees, a wide, smooth sweep of ridge-side that suggested Dream Mountains. The hand of Nature had smoothed those slopes, and planted them, to afford a soothing and restful contrast with all the mountains sur- rounding them. Think of the horrible rock-pile, a mile farther north, which Charlie and I climbed two days previously, in False Notch. Here there were no stretches of grinning slide-rock, no rock walls, no timber, either down or green, no neck-breakers of any kind. All was balmy peace. To save the face of the slopes from hav- ing an air of desolation, each was planted very evenly with stunted spruces and junipers, set eight feet apart. They grew with wonderful regularity, and so nicely scat- tered that walking was not at all impeded by them. I chose the slope of the western hill, because the sun shone full upon it, and went up on a line about a hun- dred feet above the bottom of the little naked gulch. The opposite mountain side was so queer, and so beauti- ful in the nursery-like regularity of its planting, that I frequently sat down to rest and enjoy the sight of it. It looked for all the world like an immense relief-map, such as I have made before now, set with toy evergreens, and tilted up on edge to enable one to look down upon it. I never before saw so odd a picture of mountain ALONE ON A MOUNTAIN 153 verdure. I could have counted every one of the toy trees on that whole mountain side without moving from my seat. It represented timber-line, for fair. But even there, in the Dream Mountains, the serpent reared its head. When I sat down to enjoy the sceneries, I saw those goats, ever so plainly; and the tempter whis- pered, " It would be quite a feat to kill those goats, alone and guideless, and carry in the heads of both. . . . Per- haps one of them is larger than any one of the dead six! . . , You have come far to reach this country, and with- out a grizzly bear, — ^which assuredly you will not get, — you will have only goats to show. A successful stalk, under the rim of that mountain, would be very interest- ing; and it would properly round out a glorious day." I listened to such as this until the iteration of it became irritating, then I sprang up and climbed on in the opposite direction. And then Vishnu, the goddess of Preservation, brought me to a bunch of sooty grouse. When the first bird exploded into the air, close beside me, I was well startled. The bird flew about fifty feet and alighted near its mates, thus giving me a good oppor- tunity to see them on the ground, and note their actions. The story of a flock of fool-hens is like the annals of the poor, — short and simple. Each bird stalks about stiffly, with head well up, gazing and gazing at the intruder, in stupid wonder that is wondrously stupid. With a shot-gun, there would be about as much excite- ment in shooting one as there would be in killing a sloth on the run. To a marksman who wants the birds for food, there is some interest in shooting them through the 154 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES head with a .22-calibre pistol; but with a good rifle or shot-gun, it is plain murder in the first degree. In flight this bird strongly resembles the pinnated grouse, or prairie-chicken, except that the flight of the latter is stronger. On the summit of the divide, and beyond the last of the stunted spruces, I found some willow ptarmigan. Their snow-white wings and tails, in full winter plu- mage, contrasted sharply with the brown summer plu- mage which still clothed their bodies. As usual, these birds slowly stalked about over the sky meadow, quite willing that I should approach within ten feet of them. At last, however, they rose, saying " cluck-cluck-cluck," and flew down the mountain a quarter of a mile. Above the point where my friendly little gulch starts down, a view from the summit reveals a sudden drop toward Bull River, and a great basin below. Turning southward, I followed the sky-line of the summit in such a manner as to thoroughly inspect every outcrop of sheep rocks, and every patch of open timber. The for- mer might contain mule deer, and either might harbor a band of sheep. At one point on the summit I found a very interest- ing growth of stunted spruces. They grew in family clumps, about as far apart as the trees in an orchard, and the curious thing about them was that they were so stunted by the warfare of the elements that they were really pygmy trees. Their large trunks, low stature, — seldom exceeding five feet, — and dwarfed limbs remind one of the strange dwarf trees produced by the tie-back ALONE ON A MOUNTAIN 155 process of the Japanese. On a commanding point, I found a clump which was crescent-shaped, with its con- vex side toward the west wind, and in its embrace I halted for half an hour to gaze over the top of the evergreen barricade. The encircled ground had been tramped bare, and it was evident that many a goat and sheep had recently sheltered there. The mountain slope that swept down to Bull River was a gray and melancholy waste. From a short distance below the summit, fire had devastated the mountain side, killing every tree, and exposing all the outcroppings of rugged rock and clifT. Near by, the tall gray tree- trunks, shorn of th-eir branches, were like untrimmed telegraph-poles; farther on, we saw what seemed to be a forest of hop-poles, and beyond that appeared a thin mantle of gray quills, like the covering of a hedgehog. Two miles away, the east fork of Bull River mean- dered through a narrow valley of dead timber, and on its farther side, narrow valleys climbed up westward, until they stopped abruptly in regulation rock basins, bounded by precipitous cliffs. And even as I looked across, and wondered what big game might be therein, I heard the unmistakable " Ser-lam ! " of a hunter's rifle. Some one was hunting in the rugged valley directly opposite my eyrie, and had found game. Who could it be, in that wild place? Surely it was no one from the Elk River Valley. In the course of an hour, I heard about twelve shots ; but two months elapsed ere I learned that the hunters were from Fort Steele, and were in quest of mule deer. 156 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CA^fADIAN ROCKIES The western side of my slope seemed specially favor- able for mule deer, and in the hope of finding either deer in the green timber or sheep near the cliffs, I hunted far down. It was good to get on ground that was not rocky, and to hunt through real " mule-deer country." Find it where you may, in bad-lands, foot-hills or moun- tains, the home of the mule deer is always a beautiful hunting-ground. But I found no big game; and at one o'clock I selected a lovely spot, in a clump of sturdy spruces, chose a soft resting-place on a bed of dry needles, and sat down to rest and eat my luncheon of Fry's sweet chocolate. As I settled myself, I noticed that I was on the bor-' der of an extensive bed of tiny huckleberry bushes. The shrubs were only about six inches high, but were hang- ing thick with very small, pink huckleberries, the size of No. 6 shot. That species is very common throughout those mountains. Usually the bushes grow so thinly it does not pay to pick such small berries ; but these bore so abundantly that I combed the fruit off the almost leafless stems, by the handful, winnowed it to clear away the debris, and ate until my fruit-hunger cried, " Enough! " An appreciable supply of wild fruit or nuts gives one a very friendly feeling toward the land that pro- duces it. In the tropics, you can starve, at almost any time or place, with rank vegetation all about you, be- cause there is so very little that is edible. After nearly five years spent in tropical jungles, I can count on the fingers of one hand the occasions wherein I was able to ALONE ON A MOUNTAIN 157 satisfy my hunger with wild fruits found in the forest; and as for nuts, I never found one. But in the temperate zone, — dear me! Think of the delicious plums, the berries of a dozen kinds, the wild grapes, pawpaws, persimmons, crab-apples, haws red and haws black, and nuts without end I Here in these mountains, we found in September the following berries, ripe and edible : Huckleberries; five species, widely scattered; abun- dant in places. Black Currants ; very common, dead ripe ; quite bitter, but good to quench thirst. Saskatoon, or Service-Berry; favorite food for griz- zly bears in September. Elderberry; in clumps in many valleys; plentiful. Soap-Berry; two species, red and yellow; like cur- rants, very bitter. Red Raspberry; but we found only one patch. Thimbleberry<5 grows solitary, in green timber only. Strawberry; a few found, high on the mountains. In addition to the above, which we saw, there is the Sarsaparilla-Berry, of the large river valleys; the Red Cahoosh; and the Bear-Berry, which is a strong cathartic. The very desirable bull-berry of Montana and Wy- oming does not grow in the mountains of British Colum- bia. In the green timber we found a beautiful scarlet berry, shaped like a long, thin, Boston baked bean, which no one could name or vouch for. When my mid-day rest was finished, I went on hunt- ing. Striking a much-used ^ame-trail on the summit, I 158 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES followed it southward until it ran up the southern peak far above timber-line, and led me quite near those temp- tation goats. Always those goats! I felt quite put out with them because they had fed toward me instead of away from me. For half an hour I amused myself with watching them, and testing their senses by whistling to them, say- ing, " Ah ! " in various tones, and mystifying them gen- erally, until at last they took alarm on general prin- ciples, and concluded to leave. Then in some haste they climbed over the summit. As they disappeared I turned and strode down the eastern slope, campward, after as soul-filling a day as I ever spent in the lap of Nature, but without having fired a shot. I reached camp about half an hour before sunset, and found that the reward for my abstemiousness on those temptation goats was all ready. Charlie Smith had just arrived, after a weari- some tramp of twenty-four miles, and reported that he had visited all the goat carcasses. At those of our first two goats he found two wolverines, and took a long shot at one of them. There were fresh grizzly-bear signs all about! " And to-morrow. Director," said Charlie in conclu- sion, " you're going to have a chance at a silver-tip! " Outwardly, I received this assurance with brisk ap- preciation, but inwardly I felt that the chances against me were as nine to one. CHAPTER XI MY GRIZZLY-BEAR DAY Rubbing-Trees of Bears — Fresh Grizzly "Signs" Reported — A Trip to the Goat Remains — A Silver-Tip at Work — Her Death — The Autopsy — Amateur Photography and its Results — ^The Bear's Cache — ^Wolverines Observed — A Jollification in Camp. When one can start out from camp, and in a walk of two hours find at least a dozen rubbing-trees of grizzly bears, each one with bear hair clinging to its bark, then may one say, " This is bear country! " That was what we found in the green timber of Avalanche Valley, be- tween our camp and Roth Mountain, six miles below. All the rubbing-trees we saw were from eight to twelve inches in diameter, as if small ones had been specially chosen. I suppose this is because there are no large spur roots to interfere with the standing bear; besides which, a small tree offers a sharper edge. On those trees we saw where several of the rubbing bears had bitten the trunk, high up, tearing the bark open crosswise. We also found, on some, raking claw- marks across the bark. Charlie Smith said that the tooth-marks are always made by grizzlies and the claw- marks by black bears. As before remarked, Mr. Phillips and Charlie Smith were very desirous that I should find and kill a grizzly, but for several reasons I had little hope that it would 159 i6o CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES come to pass. September is not a good month in which to find a bear of any species on those summits ; nor is a short hunting-trip conducive to the development of bear- episodes, anywhere. In spite of Charlie's hopefulness, I did not take the prospect seriously, even though in the Michel store Mack had called for twine with which to stretch bear-hides! But in bear-hunting, " it is better to be born lucky than rich." When Charlie came in on the evening of the 19th of September and reported a bear at the carcass of my first goat, it really seemed time to hope for at least a distant view of Old Ephraim. Believing that one good way to reveal certain phases of wild-animal life is in showing how animals are actually found in their haunts, I am tempted to set forth a statement of the events of Sep- tember 20th. It may be that others wonder, as I often have, just how it feels to hunt a grizzly bear, — the most dangerous American animal — and find him, at timber- line. The really bold hunters may scofif at the courage and ferocity of the grizzly as he is to-day; but Charlie Smith openly declares that the one particular thing which he never does, and never will do, is to fire his last cartridge when away from camp. It was the third day of Mr. Phillips's hunt for moun- tain sheep, and he was still absent. Charlie and I took two saddle-horses and set out before sunrise, intending to visit all the goat carcasses before returning. We pushed briskly up to the head of Avalanche Creek, climbed to the top of the pass, then dropped down into the basin on the north. I dreaded a long climb on foot MY GRIZZLY-BEAR DAY i6i from that point up to our old camp on Goat Pass, but was happily disappointed. Thanks to the good engineer- ing of some Indian trail-maker, the trail led from the head of the basin, on an easy gradient, up through the green timber of the mountain side, quite to our old camp. We found fresh grizzly-bear tracks within fifty feet of the ashes of our camp-fire; but our goat-skins in the big spruce, and our cache of provisions near it, had not been touched. It was here that we saw a solitary goat feeding on the precipitous slope beneath the glacier on Phillips Peak, as noted elsewhere. And here we were reminded of Mr. Phillips's uneasiness about the dead trees that stood near our tents, and which he had feared might blow down upon us. A large dead tree had fallen upon our camp-ground, squarely across the green bed of spruce boughs on which Charlie and Mack Norboe had slept four nightsl Had it fallen upon them as they slept, both would have been instantly killed. With only a few minutes delay, we mounted once more and rode on northward toward the scene of the first goat-kill. As we rode up the ridge of Bald Moun- tain, a biting cold wind, blowing sixty miles an hour, struck us with its full force. It went through our cloth- ing like cold water, and penetrated to the marrow in our bones. At one point it seemed determined to blow the hair off Kaiser's back. While struggling to hold myself together, I saw the dog suddenly whirl head on to the fierce blast, crouch low, and fiercely grip the turf with his claws, to keep from being blown away. It was all that our horses could do to hold a straight course, and 1 62 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES keep from drifting down to the very edge of the preci- pice that yawned only twenty-five feet to leeward. We were glad to get under the lee of Bald Mountain, where the fierce blast that concentrated on that bleak pass could not strike us with its full force. At last we reached the lake we named in honor of Kaiser. Dismounting in a grassy hollow that was shel- tered from the wind, we quickly stripped the saddles from our horses and picketed the animals so that they could graze. Then, catching up our rifles, cameras, and a very slim parcel of luncheon, we set out past the lake for the ridge that rises beyond it. The timber on the ridge was very thin, and we could see through it for a hundred yards or more. As we climbed, we looked sharply all about, for it seemed very probable that a grizzly might be lying beside a log in the fitful sunshine that struck the southern face of the hill. Of course, as prudent hunters, we were prepared to see a grizzly that was above us, and big, and danger- ous, — three conditions that guarantee an interesting ses- sion whenever they come together. Dog Kaiser was peremptorily ordered to follow us, which he did with a degree of intelligent obedience that would have shamed many a man. He is what is called a " slow trailer," which means that in following big game he either keeps close behind his master, or else goes ahead so slowly that it is possible for the latter to keep up with him, and see the game before the dog disturbs it. We reached the crest of the ridge, without having seen a bear, and with the utmost caution stalked on down MY GRIZZLY-BEAR DAY 163 the northern side, toward the spot where the two goat carcasses lay on the slide-rock. The noise we made was reduced to an irreducible minimum. We trod and straddled like men burglarizing Nat- ure's sky-parlor. We broke no dead twigs, we scraped againet no dead branches, we slid over no fallen logs. Step by step we stole down the hillside, as cautiously as if we had known that a bear was really at the foot of it. At no time would it have surprised us to have seen Old Ephraim spring up from behind a bush or a fallen log, within twenty feet of us. At last the gray slide-rock began to rise into view. At last we paused, breathing softly and seldom, behind a little clump of spruces. Charlie, who was a step in advance, stretched his neck to its limit, and looked on beyond the edge of the hill, to the very spot where lay the remains of my first mountain goat. My view was cut off by green branches and Charlie. He turned to me, and whispered in a perfectly color- less way, " He's lying right on the carcass! " " What? Do you mean to say that a bear is really there} " I asked, in astonishment. "Yes! Stand here, and you can see him, — just over the edge." I stepped forward and looked. Far down, fully one hundred and fifty yards from where we were, there lay a silvery-gray animal, head up, front paws out- stretched. It was indeed a silver-tip; but it looked awfully small and far away. He was out on the clean, 1 64 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES light-gray stipple of slide-rock, beside the scanty remains of my goat. Even as I took my first look, the animal rose on his haunches, and for a moment looked intently toward the north, away from us. The wind waved his long hair, one wave after another. It was a fine chance for a line shot at the spinal column; and at once I made ready to fire. " Do you think you can kill him from here? " asked Charlie, anxiously. " You can get nearer to him if you like." " Yes ; I think I can hit him from here all right." ( I had carefully fixed the sights of my rifle, several days previously.) " Well, if you don't hit him, I'll kick you down this ridge!" said Charlie, solemn as a church owl, with an on-your-head-be-it air. To me, it was clearly a moment of great peril. I greatly desired to watch that animal for half an hour; but when a bear-hunter finds a grizzly bear, the thing for him to do is to kill it first, and watch it after- ward. I realized that no amount of bear observations ever could explain to John Phillips the loss of that bear. As I raised my .303 Savage, the grizzly rose in a business-like way, and started to walk up the slide-rock, due south, and a little quartering from us. This was not half so good for me as when he was sitting down. Aim- ing to hit his heart and lungs, close behind his foreleg, and allowing a foot for his walking, I let go. A second or two after the " whang " the bear reared MY GRIZZLY-BEAR DAY 165 slightly, and sharply wheeled toward his right, away from us; and just then Charlie's rifle roared, — close be- side my ear! Without losing an instant, the grizzly started on a mad gallop, down the slide-rock and down the canyon, running squarely across our front. " Heavens! " I thought, aghast. " Have I missed him? " Quickly I threw in another cartridge, and fired again ; and " whang " went Charlie, as before. The bear fairly flew, reaching far out with its front feet, its long hair rolling in great waves from head to tail. Even at that distance, its silver-tipped fur proclaimed the species. Bushes now hid my view, and I ran down a few yards, to get a fair show. At last my chance came. As the bear raced across an opening in my view, I aimed three feet ahead of his nose, and fired my third shot. Instantly the animal pitched forward on his head, like a stricken rabbit, and lay very still. " Ye fetched him that time ! " yelled Charlie, trium- phantly. " He's down! He's down! Go for him, Kaiser! Go for him! " The dog was ready to burst with superheated eager- ness. With two or three whining yelps he dashed away down the ridge, and out of sight. By this time Charlie was well below me, and I ran down to where he stood, beaming up. " You've fixed him. Director! He's down for keeps." " Where is he? " " Lying right on that patch of yellow grass, and dead as a wedge. Shake! " i66 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES We shook. It would have been conceited folly to have done otherwise. To come twelve miles, find our long-lost silver-tip, and down him by eleven o'clock, made us feel that we were each of us entitled to a few gloats over the result. "Woo, yow-yow!" said Kaiser far below, — about ten seconds after he had disappeared; and there he was, looking very small, and joyously biting the hams of the dead grizzly. Instead of sitting astride a killed animal, and being photographed with one hand upon it. Kaiser gloats over his dead game by biting its hams. As quickly as possible, we descended the slope and soon stood beside the dead grizzly. Then, as often hap- pens, its sex changed very suddenly. Every grizzly is a " he," until shot! This one was a fat young female, not as big as we had hoped, but in beautiful pelage for Sep- tember. In remarking upon the length and immaculate- ness of the furry coat, which still waved in the wind, Charlie remarked, that at this season the female grizzlies have longer hair than the males. I was sorry we could not weigh the animal, but at that moment my scales were twenty miles away, with the sheep-hunters. The next thing was to photograph the game ; and in view of the wild and romantic scenery that hemmed us in, and stretched away before us, plunging down Goat Creek, I sincerely regretted the absence of Mr. Phillips and his splendid stereo camera. But Charlie Smith had his small camera and four " fillims," and surely he could do something to save the situation. In these kodak days, a grizzly-bear hunter might as well return without the MY GRIZZLY-BEAR DAY 167 hide of his grizzly as without a photograph of the dead animal. I said to Charlie that we must take the case seriously, and do our best as long as the films held out. Now, on the trail and in camp the writer is neither photographer nor cook. He has troubles enough in the departments of taxidermy and osteology. This time, however, I had a borrowed pocket-kodak and three rolls of films, but no skill in the taking of pictures. While I knew how to " compose " a picture, I knew nothing about time-exposures; and besides this, I had great dif- ficulty in finding things in a small finder. But that bear had to be photographed, and we went at it seriously. Charlie used up his films, and then I took my turn, as if, like Winkelreid, on my sole arm hung victory. In the middle distance, behind the bear, I found a very tall, columnar spruce that rose like a monument high above its neighbors; and that I adopted as the key to the situation. I photographed with bright light, and again with gray, as solemnly as if valuable results were about to be secured; but it was a great strain on Faith. A month later, when Mr. E. F. Keller developed my films, and sent me some prints from them, I laughed long. So did Mr. Phillips when I showed him one of the best of my results. Then he was mystified. " How on earth did a photographic incompetent like you ever make such a picture as that"^ " he demanded. I replied that in photography an ideal picture is 1 68 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES solely a matter of technical knowledge and artistic skill! My best picture is reproduced herewith. We made a careful autopsy of the bear, and were able to determine to a certainty the details of our shoot- ing, and its results. By good luck, my first shot went true to the mark aimed for, — the heart region, immedi- ately behind the foreleg. But it did not go through the heart. The animal was quartering to me, sufficiently that my ball passed close behind the heart, tore the lungs and liver to bits, and passed out at the middle of the right side, low down. We thrust a small stick through, in the track of the ball, and left it there. Charlie Smith fired as the bear was turning to the right. His bullet entered the left thigh, tore a great hole through the flesh between the skin and the femur, passed through the entrails, and lodged against the skin of the right side, well back. His bullets were of a larger calibre than mine, and this one was fully identified. We marked the course of that bullet, also, with a stick. After receiving those two bullets, the bear ran as if un- harmed for about a hundred yards, when my third shot broke its neck, and brought it down in a heap, too dead to struggle. It was not touched by any other bullets than the three described. The distance, as nearly as we could estimate, was one hundred and fifty yards, good measure. My first shot was of course absolutely fatal, and had I but known it, I need not have fired again. It was marvellous that the animal did not fall at the first fire, and equally so that with its lungs torn to pieces, it was MY GRIZZLY-BEAR DAY 169 able to run a hundred yards at top speed. How much farther could it have gone, had no other shots been fired? Not far, surely, for as it ran, it spattered the clean gray rocks with an awful outpouring of blood. After our photographic labors we ate our frugal luncheon, rested, then skinned the bear. That accom- plished we set out to examine the work done by our animal, with and unto the carcasses of the two goats. The result proved most interesting. First we sought the cartass of Mr. Phillips's goat, which was rolled over the cliff, and fell immediately above the spot where our silver-tip gave up her ghost. On seeking it, we found a grizzly-bear's cache of a most elaborate and artistic character. On the steep hillside a shallow hole had been dug, the whole carcass rolled into it, and then upon it had been piled nearly a wagon-load of fresh earth, moss and green plants that had been torn up by the roots. Over the highest point of the carcass the mass was twenty-four inches deep. On the ground the cache was elliptical in shape, about seven by nine feet. On the lower side it was four feet high, and on the upper side two feet. The pyramid was built around two small larch saplings, as if to secure their support. On the uphill side of the cache, the ground was torn up in a space shaped like a half-moon, twenty-eight feet long by nineteen feet wide. From this space every green thing had been torn up, and piled on the pyramid. The outer surface of the cone was a mass of curly, fibrous roots and fresh earth. In her own clumsy way, the bear had done her best lyo CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES to provide for a rainy day. Her labors would indeed have protected her prize from the eagles, but at that two feet of soft stuff a wolverine would have laughed in ghoulish glee while he laid bare the contents of that cache with about six rakes of his rascally paws. As already mentioned, on the previous day, Charlie Smith did see two wolverines in the vicinity of tliese goat remains, and fired at one of them, without effect. Both ran away across the slide-rock, often halting and defiantly looking backward, with short, stubby tail-wisp held stiffly erect. The bear had been feeding on the body of my goat, which lay far out on the slide- rock, and she had eaten all that her stomach could contain. There being still a good quantity of pickings remaining, she had decided to bury it, but from much feeding was very lazy in carry- ing out this intention. She had, however, torn up and carried out about twenty mouthfuls of moss, earth and plant-roots, and dropped them, together with half a dozen sticks, upon the remains. It was in an interval of rest from this arduous labor that we first sighted the ani- mal; and she was starting up to fetch down more mate- rial when I first fired at her. I photographed the bear's cache, but on the films the cache failed to appear. At last we finished our work, packed the bear-skin and some of the best of the meat upon one of our horses, and started for camp, riding turn about. We rolled in just before sunset, tired, but puffed up. Mr. Phillips was there; and when he was finally convinced that we really had seen a silver-tip, and shot at it, and brought The Scene of Two Actions — Goats and Grizzly I. Where we fired from, at the goats u. What Mr. Phillips's goat did. 3' What the author's goat did. 4- Where the grizzly was. S- Where we were. 6. Where the grizzly died. V. Xhe erizzlv'*! nanha MY GRIZZLY-BEAR DAY 171 back its skin and skull, his surprise and delight were not to be restrained. We danced around the camp-fire, and " Ki-yi-yied," in a wild-Indian fashion that in grown men is most undignified and reprehensible, anywhere east of the Missouri River. The bea'r was not our only cause for singing a war- song. Mr. Phillips had shot — but why spoil a good story? CHAPTER XII NOTES ON THE GRIZZLY BEAR Rarity of the Grizzly in the United States — Seasons — The Grizzly Bear's Calendar — Solitary Habits — Food of Grizzlies — A Carrion Feeder— Weight of Grizzlies— " Grizzly" or " Silver-Tip"— Re- strictions in Killing. In the United States, outside the Yellowstone Park and the Bitter Root Mountains, grizzly bears are now so very rare that it is almost impossible for a sportsman to go out and kill one, no matter where he hunts, and no matter how much money he spends. One of our best- known writers on hunting matters, who has hunted in the West at frequent intervals during the past fifteen years, recently announced that he has now given up all hope of killing a grizzly in our own country, and has turned to British Columbia. In British Columbia you can find grizzlies, provided you know when to go, and with whom to go. But the autumn is not the best season for finding bears in that country. If you would see the wild and untamed silver- tip, in the high altitudes, go in the spring, for that is the real season for hunting this grand species. Even then, you may hunt, as did Mr. Phillips's brother Robert, " for forty days, straight," without a sight of a silver-tip, or a shot ; but if you are lucky, you may bag two in a month. In the course of our camp-fire talk about bears and other animals, we had a symposium on the habits of the 17s NOTES ON THE GRIZZLY BEAR 173 grizzly at the various seasons of the year. To this all the old grizzly hunters — Charlie Smith, Mr. Phillips, and the two Norboes, — contributed; and I pieced to- gether their individual statements, and made up this GRIZZLY bear's CALENDAR January. — About January 20th the cubs are born, in the winter den. Usually they are two in number, crudely formed, and almost hairless. They are about ten inches long, weigh about eighteen ounces, and are blind, and extremely helpless. The mother coils herself around them, moves not for many days, and the helpless little creatures are almost as much enfolded as if they were in an abdominal pouch. In the New York Zoological Park the period of gestation of the Colorado grizzly is two hundred and sixty-six days, or from April 22d to January 13th. May. — In British Columbia a few grizzlies come out as early as May i, but the majority appear about the 20th. Their first spring food is the roots of the snow- lily, which is found growing on the snow slides. Be- sides this the grizzly eats other plants, of a dozen or more species, and also grass that is young and tender. As soon as they emerge from their winter den they begin to rub their backs against trees, to scratch them- selves, and they keep it up until the old hair is all off. Shedding begins early in June, and lasts until August i. June and July. — During these months the bears range far and wide, the cubs following at the heels of the mother, searching for edible grubs and roots. In their 174 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES search for edible insects, they overturn stones and tear old logs to pieces. Under every third stone (in suitable situations), a nest of ants is found; and these are greatly relished. To a bear, those sour and acidulous insects are much the same as pickles are to the human palate. The grizzly hunts up and devours all animals killed by snow- slides. Mr. Phillips once knew a dead pack-rat to be eaten. In the Bush River country, Charlie Smith saw the remains of a grizzly that had been- killed by a snow- slide, and afterward had been dug out and eaten by an- other grizzly! By the end of July the shedding of the old coat of hair is completed, and the silver-tip stands forth clad in a glossy new suit of dark brown, several shades darker than the old coat. It is very short, however, even in comparison with the September coat. August. — In the valleys of the large rivers, berries begin to ripen, and the bears at once begin to feed upon them. Naturally the berries of the lowest and warmest valleys are the first to mature ; and as the season advances, the boundary-line of the ripening fruit extends higher and higher up the mountains. In the highest valleys and mountains the berries do not ripen until September, just before the first heavy fall of snow. Strawberries come first, but they are so thinly scattered the total amount of food they furnish is small. Next comes the saskatoon, or service-berry, which is an important item of food, and whenever ripe is much sought by bears. They last so late into September that they detain the bears in the valleys of the large rivers when otherwise the animals NOTES ON THE GRIZZLY BEAR 175 would go up into the mountains to feed on huckleberries, and be shot. September. — It is in this month that the bears take on the greatest amount of fat, for winter use. By Sep- tember 15 the pelage is quite long, faultless in texture, and very richly colored. Of the five species of huckle- berries and blueberries that grow in the mountains, two are large and fine, and furnish an excellent supply of bear food. This is the month of bear migration, from the lower valleys upward, feeding on berries all the way. The earlier the coming of the first heavy snowfall, the earlier the migration. When the bears cannot get huc- kleberries, they eat black currants, but not with great relish, because they are rather bitter. The root of a " wild-pea vine " {Hedysarum) is eaten with great rel- ish. It tastes precisely like green-pea pods, and is really very palatable. When the root is chewed, its residuum is tough and woody, but the outside is gelatinous, like slippery-elm bark. October. — After the berries are gone, the grizzlies dig for "gophers" {Citellus columbianus), and for Hedys- arum roots, until the ground freezes to such a depth that they cannot break through it. When digging becomes impossible, the bears seek their winter dens, and hibernate. At most seasons of the year the male grizzly bear is a solitary creature. As a rule, the only individuals found living together are the mother and cubs. Occasionally it happens that the yearling cubs remain with their mother for some months after the birth of their sue- 176 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES cessors, but the eighteen-months-old cub usually is found quite alone. It often happens, however, that in the height of the berry season, six or seven bears may be found together in the same berry-patch; but this does not mean that all those individuals had been living together. Mr. W. H. Wright, a very successful bear-hunter, once killed seven bears in one day; and Prof. L. L. Dyche once saw on the head of the Pecos River, in New Mexico, seven grizzlies travelling together. But such occurrences are very rare exceptions, and the rule is exactly the reverse. Mr. Phillips once found two sets of tracks showing how one bear had chased another out of his territory. Like the wolves of the North-west, the grizzly bears of to-day know well that a deadly rifle is the natural corollary to a man. Nine grizzlies out of every ten will run the moment a man is discovered, no matter what the distance may be from bear to man. The tenth will charge you, fearlessly, especially if you make your attack from below. It is said that a wounded grizzly always runs down hill; and this may account for some charges toward hunters below, which might not have taken place had the hunter been ofif to one side. It must be borne in mind that the grizzly feeds ac- cording to the bill of fare' available in his locality at a given time. In some localities he feeds upon salmon, the bulbs of various plants, and even upon grass ; but wher- ever found, he is fond of berries. He is not a proud feeder. He turns up his nose at nothing that he can chew and assimilate, except skunks O j3 Oh NOTES ON THE GRIZZLY BEAR 177 and porcupines. According to the needs of the hour, he feeds upon the best or the worst. Beyond doubt, he pre- fers an elk, fat, fresh and filling; but when hunger plucks vulture-like at his vitals, he will not disdain to pick a dead and bloated pack-rat out of a snowslide and put it where he thinks it will do the most good. The carrion state does not bother him in the least, if he is hungry. Most impartially he cleans up the car- casses of big game left by the hunter. He has been known to eat the flesh of his own kind, which surely is in very bad taste, ethically, but otherwise it is not so bad in him as in the hunters who sometimes devour his hams, regardless of their origin. Occasionally a grizzly will feed on a carcass in the daytime, but the majority wisely defer their visits until nightfall, and retire before dawn. Many a hunter has tried to kill a grizzly over the remains of a horse spe- cially slaughtered as a bait, but none of my bear-hunting friends ever have succeeded in killing a grizzly by that plan. Usually the bear comes only in the darkness, or else remains away altogether. I believe that nearly every time the weight of a griz- zly bear is estimated, it is greatly over-estimated. The size of a stretched skin, and the length of the pelage in the winter season, always suggests an animal larger and heavier than the reality. Trim down every " estimate " fully one-third, and you will have something near the proper figure. In bear-guessing errors, the writer is no exception. Bears always have seemed to me much larger than the cold and unimaginative scales show them to be. 1 78 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES Both in the United States and British Columbia, the grizzly bears of to-day are not extremely large. I think the bears that do mature are killed by hunters before they have lived the seven years that are necessary to the production of specimens of the largest size. To-day, any grizzly that will weigh seven hundred and fifty pounds may fairly be called a very large one. Those which will weigh a thousand pounds are now as rare as white buffaloes. I never have seen, and never expect to see, a one-thousand-pound grizzly. The largest indi- vidual that I ever knew to be weighed was one that died in Lincoln Park, Chicago, and which was found, by Mr. G. O. Shields, to weigh eleven hundred and fifty- three pounds. By old hunters it was " estimated " at eighteen hundred pounds. So far as I can learn, the Rocky Mountains have not produced during the past ten years a wild grizzly actually weighing, on scales, over seven hundred and fifty pounds. The great majority of the largest specimens killed and weighed during the last twenty years have weighed between five hundred and six hundred pounds ; but records of actual weights, on scales, are very, very rare. In the Zoological Park at New York, we have had grizzly bears coming from Chihuahua, Mexico, from Colorado, Wyoming and White Horse, Yukon Terri- tory. Between all these there can be discerned no ex- ternal differences.- I believe they all belong to the same species, straight Ursus horribilis. Just where the griz- zlies of the far north are met by the Alaskan brown bears, no one is as yet able to say. Mr. J. W. Tyrrell NOTES ON THE GRIZZLY BEAR 179 found the Barren Ground grizzly about one hundred miles east of the eastern end of Great Bear Lake. There has been much talk in the Colorado mountains, and in a few other localities, about the " silver-tip " and the " grizzly," and several times I have been asked to state the characters of each. Like the continuous and ever-tiresome " ibex," — which will not down, — there is nothing in this question. A " silver-tip " is a Rocky Mountain grizzly, no more, no less. The two are one and indivisible, but the coat of the animal varies all the way from the gray-washed " bald-faced " grizzly to the darkest of the dark-brown individuals, which in Novem- ber are sometimes of a dark chocolate-brown color. I have tried in vain to find constant characters in the claws of grizzly bears, but each time I have concluded that I had found out something that was constant, im- mediately the old material has been discredited by new, and I now am as far as ever from a permanent conclu- sion. Some grizzlies have very long claws, that are strongly curved, and again others have claws that are rather short and blunt. They vary greatly, according to conditions, and the uses to which they have been put. To-day there is in the United States only one locality wherein wild grizzlies exist in any number, and that is the remote fastnesses of the Bitter Root Mountains of Idaho, known as the Clearwater country. Mr. W. H. Wright knows where there are bears, but the mountains are so steep, and the brush so thick, it is not every sports- man who can get a shot, even when grizzlies are seen. Of course every one knows of the tame grizzlies of the i8o CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES Yellowstone Park, and the very few wild ones immedi- ately around that reservation. For several reasons, I am totally opposed to the trap- ping of grizzlies for their skins, to poisoning them, and to permitting any hunter to kill more than one grizzly per year. In other words, I think the time has come to protect this animal, at least everywhere south of lati- tude 54°. As a state asset, every live, wild grizzly of adult size is worth from $300 to $500, and as a hunter's grand object, it is worth much more. The trapping and poisoning of this noble animal should be prohibited, at once, throughout the whole United States and south- ern British Columbia; and this prohibition should stand forever. It is folly for Idaho, Colorado, Wyoming or New Mexico, to permit the killing of a five-hundred- dollar silver-tip for a twenty-dollar skin; and every guide should know this without being told. Moreover, the slaughter of half a dozen grizzlies by one man in, a single season is far worse for the big-game interests of America than the killing of that number of bull elk. Eliminate the bears from the Canadian Rockies, and a considerable percentage of the romance and wild charm which now surrounds them like a halo, will be gone. So long as grizzlies remain to make awesome tracks and dig " gophers," just so long will brain-weary men take the long trail to find them, climb mountains until they are half-dead of precious physical fatigue, and whether they kill grizzlies or not, they will return like new men, vowing that they have had the grandest of all outings. CHAPTER XIII PHOTOGRAPHING A MOUNTAIN GOAT AT SIX FEET Wild-Animal Photography — A Subject on the Crags — At the Head of the Grand Slide — The Billy Goat at Bay — Exposures at Six Feet — The Glaring Eyes of the Camera Stops a Charge — At Last the Subject Stands Calmly and looks Pleasant — In Peril from a " Dead " Knee — A Sleepless Night from the Perils of the Day. At last the camera has fully and fairly captured the elusive, crag-defying Rocky Mountain goat. Oreamnos has stood for his picture, at short range, looking pleasant and otherwise, and the pictures call for neither an " if " nor an apology. They are all that the most ambitious wild-animal photographer could reasonably desire. In photographing rare wild aninfals in their haunts, the camera always begins at long range and reduces the focal distance by slow, and sometimes painful degrees. To the difficulties always present in photographing a large wild animal in its haunts must be added the dan- gerous crag-climbing necessary in securing fine pictures of the mountain goat. So far as I know, the first photographs ever made of Oreamnos in his native haunts were taken by the late E. A. Stanfield, on the rock walls of the Stickine River, northern British Columbia, in 1898, not far from where he afterward lost his life in that dangerous stream. This was a single negative showing two goats in the middle distance, and three others, far away, sticking against the 1 82 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES side of what appeared to be a perfectly smooth wall of rock several hundred feet high. After that came three or four pictures of goats taken in timber, on level ground, and amid surroundings that seemed more suitable for white-tailed deer than crag- climbing goats. The distance was so great that it was only when the negatives were much enlarged that the goats became interesting. On both sides of our ideally beautiful camp in the head of Avalanche Valley, the mountains rose steeply and far. First came the roof slopes, a mile from bottom to top, their faces seamed with parallel " slides " and ribbed with the ridges of rock and points of moss-green timber that climbed up between them. Above all that rose the long stretches of crag and rock wall, crowned by peak, " dome," and " saddle." From bottom to top we scanned the slide-ways for grizzly bears feeding on berries, or digging roots. We watched the grassy belt just below the clifif-foot for mountain sheep. Goats we saw up there, daily, in little groups of three to five; but we had resolutely drawn our firing-line at three goats each. But there was one old billy who fascinated us all. When we looked out of our tents on our first morning in that camp, he was calmly lying upon a ledge at the foot of the cliff immediately above us, near a bank of per- petual snow. For two days he remained there, at the same elevation, moving neither north nor south more than three hundred yards. When hungry, he came down to the foot of the cliff and fed on the tender plants The Haunt of the Camera Goat The goat was photographed on the steep rocks shown on the left, at the point indicated. Taken at a distance of two miles across Avalanche Valley. PHOTOGRAPHING A MOUNTAIN GOAT 183 that grew at timber-line, then climbed back to his favor- ite contour line, to lie and doze away the hours. That goat seemed so sociable that finally we began to regard him as one of us, and we scrutinized him and apostrophized him to our heart's content. On the fourth morning, the beautifully clear sky and faultless atmos- phere revealed a rare opportunity. While the cook was putting the finishing touches to an inspiring breakfast of ^ried mule-deer steaks and other luxuries, those of us who had most quickly succeeded in finding the clean spots on the camp towels took our usual early-morning gaze at " that old goat." (Ye gods! How glorious was the crisp air, the spruce-woods odor, the crackle and snap of the camp-fire, and the golden glow of sunrise on the western peaks and precipices! That was life, — with- out a flaw.) As we gathered around our standing-lunch breakfast table, I remarked to Mr. Phillips that it would be a glorious feat to secure some really fine photographs of that billy goat in his natural environment. Turning to his side partner, Mr. Phillips said very positively, " Mack, it is up to the unscientific section to get those pictures! " " I dunno about them environments," answered Mack slowly, while he steered a long line of condensed cream into his cofifee-cup, " but we can shore git a boxful of scenery up thar. We never yet shot a full-grown billy with a camery; and they're mighty onsartin critters. If we corral him too close, he'll like as not go vicious, and knock us clean off the mountain." 1 84 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES We soon saw that an attempt would be made to round up that goat somewhere, somehow, and take a picture of him at short range. In a few minutes we invented a wigwag code of signals by which the cook was to signal at intervals, with a clean towel on the end of a fossil tepee-pole, the position of the goat. Mr. Phillips and Mack Norboe made ready for the event, and with Kaiser to assist in manipulating the goat, presently set out. Mr. Phillips dislikes writing about his adventures, but in view of the fact that he alone is able to relate the occurrences of that day, I prevailed upon him to write out the following account of that daring and dangerous episode. Had I known on that morning the risks that he would run on those cliffs, hanging by one hand on a knife-edge of rotten rock with an angry goat at a near- ness of six feet and threatening to knock him off into mid- air, I would not for any number of photographs have encouraged the enterprise. It was only the merciful Providence which sometimes guards insane camera enthusiasts which prevented a frightful tragedy; for it is well known throughout the goat country that an old male goat cornered on a ledge will fight dog or man. In order to assist the photographers to the utmost, Charlie Smith and I considerately went bear-hunting; and this is Mr. Phillips's account of how the goat pictures were obtained: " Shortly after twelve o'clock. Mack and I started for the goat that had been hanging out above our camp. We took my stereoscopic camera, Charlie Smith's four-by-five PHOTOGRAPHING A MOUNTAIN GOAT 185 camera, the dog, and my big gun in order to kill the goat if he attacked me. " After crossing the narrow flat of Avalanche Creek, we struck up the long, grassy slide directly opposite our camp. At first its slope was about twenty degrees, but this gradually increased until finally, where it struck the slide-rock, it almost stood on end. We reached the slide- rock about 2 P.M., after which the going was harder than ever. Gradually we worked our way out of the slide on to a high, rocky point which rose toward the south. " Although lightly clad, we were by that time very warm. I had taken off my hunting shirt, and hung it upon my back, and opened the sides of my knickerbockers. Inside and out, we needed all the air we could get. I wore that day a pair of light golf shoes with rubber soles, tipped at the toes and heels with leather in which were fixed some small steel nails. These soles were very flex- ible, and adjusted themselves so well to the inequalities of the rocks that I could jump, and stick where I lit. Mack said: 'With. them foot-riggin's, you shore kin go whar a bar kin! ' Mack was not so well equipped as to foot- gear, having on an old pair of shoes with turned-up toes, set with nails that were much worn. This handicapped him on the bare rocks. " ' It's about time Cookie wiggled that rag, to show us whar that goat is,' said Mack as we seated ourselves to rest, and took out our glasses. " Sure enough. In a few minutes we saw Huddleston out on the green flat in front of the tents, waving vigor- ously; and from his signals we knew that the goat was 1 86 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES still there, toward the south, and above us. We decided that the Director's semaphore system was a good thing. " We knew that our best chance for success lay in getting above the goat, to prevent his escape to the peaks, then in cornering him, somewhere. After a long diag- onal climb we found ourselves under the wall of the snow-capped mountain, which rose sheer up two hundred feet or more, then rounded off into a dome going about three hundred feet higher. Now, just here we found a very strange feature of mountain work. A great rock buttress stretched along the foot of the mountain wall, originally continuous, and several hundred feet long. But somehow a big section had been riven out of the mid- dle of that ridge, going quite down to the general face of that mountain-side, like a railway cut standing almost on end. This central cut-out section is now the head of a big slide, five hundred feet wide at the cliff, from which it descends at a fearful pitch. " This slide is now bounded at the top by two ridges of rock, each with a steep wall facing the gap. The space lying between these walls is filled with masses of frost- riven rock, from the peak above, varying in size from dust to rocks the size of a freight car. The weight and momentum of the larger rocks had carried them well down the mountain, and some of them were so evenly balanced that it seemed as if a touch would be sufficient to send them thundering on. "We stood on the top of the northern ridge, close under the foot of the cliff, and looked down the rock wall which dropped almost perpendicularly to the slide-way far c. ^ k. « ^^^^^^^K^v ' ^^ ^HptV^^-r''' v^9| 1 1 ^%^f]^!^^«|^^^H HI 1 I^^^^^^^Ba ig^*.i"^'\^*t,* ' yj'^,^^* *i..;^a^^B The Face of the Precipice from Below, with Goat in situ PHOTOGRAPHING A MOUNTAIN GOAT 187 below. On the south side of the slide rose a ridge very similar to the one on which we stood. " From the signals Huddleston made at that time, we knew that the goat was below us. ' Thar he is, now 1 ' exclaimed Mack, pointing down our ridge, and looking as he pointed I saw the animal about one hundred and fifty yards below us on a point of rock overhanging the slide. He was staring down toward our camp, as if he saw Huddleston and his signals, but I doubt if he did see our cook, for without glasses the distance was too great. " Up to that moment, our dog Kaiser had been obe- diently following at our heels. Then we showed him the goat, and explained to him what we desired. He seemed to quite understand what we wished him to do. Leaving us at once, he silently worked his way down over the rocks, and in three or four minutes jumped the goat. And then pandemonium broke loose. Kaiser barked ex- citedly. Mack rolled stones, and I yelled. " The goat was very much surprised by all this noise, and the sudden assault of the dog. Seeing that his retreat to the upper sanctuary of the cliffs was effectually cut off, he bounded like a great ball of cotton down the almost perpendicular wall of the cliflf, into the slide-way two hundred feet below. To get down safely after his game. Kaiser had to hunt for stairs, and before he reached the bottom the goat was well across the slide. " In the meantime I had scrambled down the rocks into the head of the slide, and found that although it pitched at a frightful angle, I could get footing close 1 88 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES under the sheer mountain wall, so I ran and scrambled across, jumping over some waterworn fissures. When I reached the opposite wall, I saw the goat below me com- ing up the ridge. Owing to the shape of the slide, I had travelled only one-third the distance covered by the goat. " Seeing me above him, the goat thought he was again cut off from the mountain, and so sought safety on the face of the wall that overhung the slide. He did not realize that he could easily have passed me by going up the ridge before I could head him off. " Seeing that the goat was safe for the moment, I thought of Mack, and fearing that he had fallen, went back. I found him at the bottom of one of the water- worn fissures. It was too wide for him to jump, so he had gone down into the rock crevasse, and when I found him he was on his hands and knees; and no wonder. The bottom was worn quite smooth, and pitched down at an angle of about sixty degrees. When he heard me he looked up, and said : ' I wisht I had some of the legs them octopuses had that the Professor was tellin' us about! I'd shore rope myself over this ditch!' " When finally Mack crawled out of his trouble, we went over and looked at the goat. I took a picture of him from the slide, then leaving Mack in the slide with my gun, I worked my way with the cameras out up on the ridge, and finally secured a position above the goat. " I found him standing on a ledge about eighteen inches wide, backed against a slight projection on the face of the cliff, which cut the ledge off. The ledge rose at rather a steep incline for about twenty feet up to Copyright, 1903. by John ^^ Phillips. The Goat on the Stratified Rock Looliing: ttnvard A\'al:inclie Creel<. PHOTOGRAPHING A MOUNTAIN GOAT 189 the level on which I stood. The goat was about eight feet below me, while below him was a sheer drop of a hun- dred and fifty feet or more, down to the slide-rock. " He was a very large goat, weighing, I should say, fully three hundred pounds. He had a magnificent pair of horns, fully ten inches long. I was surprised to note that he did not show the least sign of panic, or even fear. He looked up at me quite calmly, and then, ignoring me entirely, solemnly and serenely gazed out over the crags below. " After a few trials from above I found it impossible to get a good picture of him without getting much nearer ; so I yelled down to Mack : ' I'm going down to him. If he charges me, you must kill him, in a hurry.' " Setting the focus of my stereo camera for six feet, and placing the bulb in my mouth, I gradually worked my way down the ledge, carrying my camera in one hand and holding to the wall with the other. When I was within about twelve feet of him. Mack yelled to me : " ' Look out thar! He's a- raisin' his tail, like a buf- falo bull! He's goin' to knock you off!' " Mack was raised in Texas, with the buffalo, and diagnosed the case correctly. The very next instant, so it seemed to me, the goat came at me, head and tail up, ears drooped forward and eyes blazing green. He came with a bouncing rush, hammering the stones with his front feet so that the loose ones flew like broken ice. I was taken completely by surprise, for I did not think that on a ledge so narrow an animal could or would charge me. 1 90 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES " I was perfectly helpless, for I could not step aside, and it was impossible for me to back quickly up that steep and narrow shelf. The goat was too quick for Mack, for I heard him yell, in great alarm, * I can't shoot, or I'll hit ye both! ' " Mack told me afterward that he dared not shoot from where he wss, for fear the heavy ball would go through the goat, glance against the rock, and either kill me or throw me off the ledge. I was terribly frightened, but mechanically snapped the camera when the goat was about six feet away. There was really nothing that I could do except to hold the camera at him, and snap it. " He charged up to within a yard of me, but with his eyes fixed on the two lenses. Then he appeared to conclude that any animal that could stand that much without winking was too much for him, so shaking his head and gritting his teeth he stopped, and to my great relief slowly backed into his niche. " Believing that he would not charge the camera, I followed him down, and secured a picture of him at six feet. Then Mack began to see more symptoms of trou- ble, and since I had exposed my last film I backed out. Then I remembered the four-by-five camera, and started down with it, but Mack yelled angrily: " ' Hold on there ! That goat's plumb dangerous, and if you start down there again, I'll shorely kill him! What's the use o' bein' locoed an' gettin' killed fer a few picters?' " Mack was so wrought up that to save the goat I abandoned my intention; and when he finally joined PHOTOGRAPHING A MOUNTAIN GOAT 191 me, we slipped another roll of films into the stereo camera. " Just as we finished our reloading operation, Kaiser took a look down at the goat, at very close range, when all of a sudden, like a Jack-in-the-box, the old billy was up from the ledge and after him. Kaiser ran to us for protection, the goat charging after him, most deter- minedly. Mack and I yelled, and waved our arms, and finally turned the goat down over the point, this time with Kaiser chasing him. " They were soon out of our sight, but we could hear the rocks rolling below, and knew that they were going back across the slide. So we slid off the crags into the head of the slide, and running across at some risk to our necks, finally turned the goat on to a small pinnacle, about where we first jumped him. " It was here that I secured some of my best pictures. Mack, perched on the top of the crag, attracted the goat's attention and tantalized him by waving his hat, while I made pictures as fast as possible. We had to keep Kaiser in the background, for apparently the goat blamed him for all his troubles, and I believe Billy was mad enough at that time to charge the dog through fire. " My footing was very insecure, and being obliged to hold on with one hand and watch the goat in fear that he would charge me, I could not use the finder of my camera. Once as the goat charged up the rock at Mack I got in close to him, when he suddenly turned on me, gritting his teeth as he did so. His lip protruded like the lower lip of a charging bear, and with his front feet 192 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES he stamped on the rocks until the small, loose fragments flew in every direction. " It was just then that I got my best snapshot from in front, although the picture fails to show his ugly temper as I saw it. As I rolled in another film he charged me. Unfortunately I was so scared that I did not have pres- ence of mind to press the bulb at the right distance. He bounced up to within four feet of me, when again the two big, glaring eyes of the camera fascinated and checked him. Just as he turned his head from the un- winking eyes of my stereo, I snapped it, but he was inside the focus. " At that instant Kaiser, who had escaped from Mack's surveillance, appeared below me, and the goat immediately charged down upon him. Kaiser cleverly eluded him, and then the goat went on down into the slide, running diagonally across it to a rocky point beyond, where we again rounded him up. And then I discovered that my stereo camera was out of films! " Regardless of the severity of the climb down to camp and back again. Mack insisted upon making the trip and bringing me more films, and immediately started. " It was my duty to hold the goat at bay as best I could during the two hours' interval that I knew must elapse. The animal was then standing on the side of what seemed to me a sheer cliff, and when I slowly climbed down to look at him, he quite ignored me. Finding a sheltered niche in the cliff a hundred feet above him, I donned my hunting shirt and sat down to watch and wait. Copyright, igos'by John M. Phillips. An Angry Mountain Goat at Close Quarters Distance four feet ; inside the focus. After charging so near he concluded to halt and back up to his first position. PHOTOGRAPHING A MOUNTAIN GOAT 193 " It was then about 3 P.M., and there followed a long, cold interval. Once Kaiser created a diversion by zig- zaging down and taking another peep at his enemy, who immediately scrambled up the rocks at him, as fast as he could come. Kaiser retreated in good order, but soon turned and barked defiantly at the goat. After this futile charge, the goat backed away until his hindquarters hung over the cliflf; then he charged a second time. Apparently he was determined to kill the dog, and rushed after him again and again. The goat would raise his tail, throw his ears forward, and without lowering his head go bounding stifif-legged after the dog like a buck- ing broncho. At times it seemed as if his object was to trample the dog rather than horn him, but Kaiser was quick enough, and easily dodged his rushes. Then the old goat would stand and glare at him, gritting his teeth and sometimes sticking his tongue out, the personifica- tion of anger. It was a most interesting performance, and in spite of being very cold I was fascinated by it. " About six o'clock I heard rocks rolling in the slide far below me, and knew that Mack was coming. Then I decided to get a better view of the trouble between the goat and the dog, and crawled down to the point on which the fight was taking place. I worked down within twenty feet of the goat, when suddenly he whirled and came at me. I pointed my rifle at him and yelled, hop- ing to frighten him. He came within six feet of me, and I was about to fire when Kaiser barked close behind him. The goat turned so quickly he almost trampled the dog, who dodged under him and ran to me! 194 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES " Fortunately I was above the goat, and finding that the odds were against him he bounded off the point, and once more fled for the slide. This was the maddest race of all, for it called for quick work to get across the top of the slide in time to head off the goat. On that fright- ful pitch every jump I made loosened stones which dis- lodged others, and they went rolling and rumbling down the slide. The dog and goat also started their full quota of rocks, and for a time it seemed as if the whole moun- tain-side were moving. But I succeeded in heading off the goat, and clambered up on the wall above him. " A few minutes later Mack joined me, and as he wiped the beads of perspiration from his shiny bald head, I said to him : ' Did you see the beautiful race we had across the slide? ' ' Didn't see nothin',' he answered with an air of irritation. ' I thought everything had broken loose up here, and I was too busy dodgin' rocks to care who won any race. You-alls shore tore up the scenery! ' " After placing a new roll in the camera I crawled around on the hanging wall, and secured a very, good picture of the goat. As I closed in he started to retreat, but by following him up I secured a picture as he was getting away. Then Mack headed him once more, on the farther side of the cliff, when he took refuge in a niche near the top of the wall. " As we approached him from above, he again got his eyes on Kaiser, and charged up through the group which we three made. Fortunately Kaiser engaged his attention, which enabled Mack and me to head him and drive him back. For a time we lost him on the <: s e o Q J3 J u PHOTOGRAPHING A MOUNTAIN GOAT 19 S crags below. Presently, however, I found him standing on a wall which jutted out of the cliff on the north side of the great slide. At that point, the cliff towered up perpendicularly a hundred feet above the slide, and the goat was about twenty feet from the top, standing on a small projecting edge of rock that looked like a peg driven in the wall. " At first it seemed utterly impossible to get a pic- ture there, but on studying the rocks a little, I thought I saw a way. Leaving Mack above to watch, I crawled down to a point almost over the goat, where I found that the mountain-side pitched down at an angle of at least thirty degrees, increasing to sixty, and ending in a sheer drop of a hundred feet or more. The rock was strati- fied, dipping toward the valley, like the slates on a roof. The layers varied from the thickness of ordinary roof- slates to three or four inches. Much of this was loose, and had to be removed before I could get a footing. " As I worked down, I started quite an avalanche of stone, and held my breath while I heard it go rum- bling into the depths below. Just as I was thinking of going back. Mack called out, loudly and anxiously: ' Say, Jack! Is that you? ' ' No,' I said, ' it's only rock.' ' I thought you had shore ruined the mountain that time.' He tried to appear unconcerned, but by his voice I could tell how he felt. " At last I succeeded in working over to the edge of the cliff, and found myself on a level with the goat, and only eight feet away. It was as if he stood on a window sill on the gable end of a house, while I hung upon the 196 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES corner of the slate roof. By reaching far down with my left foot I succeeded in getting one good foot-hold, but I had to double my other leg under me and lean forward upon my knee. After considerable work I broke off pieces of rotten rock, and built up a fair sort of a camera rest, supporting half of it upon my knee. The top slab of my stone-pile projected beyond the face of the clifif, so that between goat and camera there was no obstruction whatever. " To my amazement and joy, during all this time the goat paid no attention to me, but stood there as calm and cool as an icicle. He really seemed to be enjoying his view of the scenery. " After I had my camera set, I took a picture of him with his head slightly turned away, then I began to talk to him in a soothing voice, calling to him, ' Hey, Billy! ' when he deigned to turn his head and look at me. Mack heard me talking to him, and called down, — as evidence that he was near, — ' He don't know his name! You might as well call him Mike! ' " This was the best chance I had with that animal ; but by that time it was late and the light was not very favorable. However, I gave him time exposures, and got some very fair results. Every now and then the old fellow would stick out his tongue at me, and once I took a snapshot expressly to show that, but the result was not very good. " After using up the six films in the camera, I swung it on my back and attempted to edge back from the face of the precipice. Then to my dismay I discovered that Drawn by Charles B. Hudson. Mr. Phillips's Most Dangerous Position PHOTOGRAPHING A MOUNTAIN GOAT 197 the bent knee on which I had been resting was as dead as if permanently paralyzed. It was stiff, and worse than useless. I had been frightened two or three times during that afternoon, but this was the climax. I called to Mack, and told him of the fix I was in, but owing to his bad shoes he could not come down to help me. Then I was sorry we had not brought a rope. " Seeing that I must work out my own salvation I began to punch and beat my leg, and kept it up until at last the circulation started, and feeling returned. Finally I managed to crawl back very slowly to where Mack could reach me, and he soon landed me safely upon a level spot. " While this was going on, the goat got tired of inac- tion, jumped up over the wall and started for the peak. For some reason, however, he changed his course and climbed down into the slide, with the dog after him. Expecting to see a good race we stopped to watch it; but poor Kaiser's feet were now very sore and the goat outran him. And then a queer thing happened. " The goat stopped on the farther edge of the slide, and finding that his human tormentors were nowhere near, he decided to get square with that dog! When Kaiser reached him, the goat charged furiously. Seeing his danger, the dog turned and started back the way he came, with the goat in hot pursuit. The goat pursued by a series of short rushes, and not by the steady, straight- away run that a bear makes. He followed the dog almost to the ridge on which we were, but finally desisted, and retreated southward. 198 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES " It was then so late that we started at once for camp in order to get off the crags before dark. It grew dark before we reached camp, but at last we were guided in by the camp-fire, thoroughly exhausted, and half famished' for water. I never knew Kaiser to drink so long as then, and his feet were so raw and sore that he scarcely could bear to have them doctored." Mr. Phillips's narrative, as he records it, does not half adequately portray the frightful risks that he ran on that memorable afternoon. That night, I think he was awake all night, save once. Then he threshed around in his sleeping-bag, and clutched wildly at the silk tent-roof over his head. " Hey, John!" I called out sharply, to waken him. " What's the matter? Are you having a nightmare? " " Oh ! " he groaned. " I thought I was falling off those rocks, — clear down to the tents ! " Just before breakfast the next morning Mr. Phillips said to Mack in a quiet aside, " How did you sleep. Mack? " "I didn't sleep nonel" said Mack, solemnly. " Whenever I dozed off I dreamt that old Oramus was buttin' us off them rocks. Every time I lit I shore made it lively for Charlie." They were not the first men whose sleep had been destroyed by the recrudescence of the horrors of the rocks. The next day men and dog rested quietly in camp, too tired and sore to move out. CHAPTER XIV A RAINY DAY IN CAMP The Finest of all Camps — A Record-Breaking Cook — Fearful Slaughter of Comestibles — Drying Meat from Big Game — A Good Method Described — The Norboe Brothers — Trapping on Bull River — The Trappers' Bill of Fare — Mack Norboe's Biggest Bear — The Big Bear that Got Away. The afternoon of September i6th was dominated by misty rain. It was too wet for hunting, but under the giant Canadian white-spruce trees which encircled one side of our camp, we sat, and spat into the camp-fire, and yarned away the hours most comfortably. Big, fleecy white clouds from Bull River floated into our val- ley, dragged softly along the side of the eastern moun- tains, and left the green timber and yellow grass of the slides looking like a freshly varnished oil-painting. Our horses grazed on the rich meadow in front of the tents, snorted with satisfaction, tinkled their bell, and fed until they could feed no more. Dog Kaiser appointed himself special camp-guard, and whenever a horse crossed his dead-line, there was an indignant bark, a bitten pastern, a vicious kick in mid-air at a dog that was always six inches the other way, and a quick retreat. It was a busy day for Huddleston, the cook; for in camp, the hunter's fancy lightly turns to thoughts of '99 200 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES grub. When Charlie and I tramped in at one o'clock, on account of the rain, the others were all there, and for the remainder of the afternoon we snugged down under the three big spruces that formed a triangle around our camp-fire, and loafed, and invited our souls. Were I to hunt a thousand years longer, I think it would be impossible to find a more ideal camping-spot than that which Mr. Phillips named in my honor. The shelter of the beautiful grove of spruces, the magnifi- cent mountains within a stone's throw on either hand, the long-distance view down the valley to Roth Moun- tain and Glacier, the slides, the vegetation of timber- line, the water, the wild life, and last but not least, the grass for our faithful, never-running-away horses made a combination of conditions rarely found in this world. To me, the pace set by our chef was highly amusing. Never before have I camped with a cook who took his job as seriously as did Huddleston. To begin with, he was young and vigorous, accustomed to hard work, and there was not a shirking bone in his body. He rose in the morning, he cooked meals, he washed things, hewed wood and drew water as if his life depended upon the perfect doing of each section of his daily work. The amount of food that he cooked on his folding stove, and the quantity of bread that he baked before our camp- fire in his jolly little reflector-oven, was simply appall- ing. I used to think that my band of rustlers on the 1886 buffalo hunt ate the most of any human beings I ever camped with; but on this last trip, the crowd ate more. No doubt it was because we had a greater variety, A RAINY DAY IN CAMP aoi and the temptation was stronger. It will be many a year ere I cease to hear Huddleston saying briskly, " Grub's ready, gentlemen. Now, which will you have? Coffee, tea or chocolate? I've got 'em all! " We all believed in having luxurious camp-fires; and wood was plentiful and cheap. Each night and morn- ing it was a white man's camp-fire, for fair. You know the familiar Indian saying current in the West, — " White man make heap-big fire, get way ofif!" It was against the rules to cut logs shorter than six feet — save when away from home, and camping on a trail. From the very first, I began to dry wild meat, after a very good fashion which I had learned of my old friend L. A. Huffman, away back in the bad-lands of Montana. Strange to say, none of the other members of our party knew any good method of drying meat, and they watched my work with keen interest, and an eye to the future. The process is so simple a child can use it, and the ingredients can be purchased in any frontier store, for a few cents. In Michel, I bought half a pound of black pepper, an equal quantity of ground allspice, and four three-pound bags of fine table-salt. The proportions of the mixture I use are: Salt, three pounds; allspice, four table-spoonfuls, and black pepper five table-spoonfuls, all thoroughly mixed. Take a ham of deer, elk, or mountain sheep, or fall- killed mountain goat, and as soon as possible after kill- ing, dissect the thigh, muscle by muscle. Any one can learn to do this by following up with fhe knife the 202 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES natural divisions between the muscles. With big game like elk, some of the muscles of the thigh are so thick they require to be split in two. A piece of meat should not exceed five inches in thickness. Skin off all envel- oping membranes, so that the curative powder will come in direct contact with the raw, moist flesh. The flesh must be sufficiently fresh and moist that the pre- servative will readily adhere to it. The best size for pieces of meat to be cured by this process is not over a foot long, by six or eight inches wide and four inches thick. When each piece has been neatly and skilfully pre- pared rub the powder upon every part of the surface, and let the mixture adhere as much as it will. Then hang up each piece of meat, by a string through a hole made in the smaller end, and let it dry in the wind. If the sun is hot, keep the meat in the shade; but in the north, the sun helps the process. Never let the meat get wet. If the weather is rainy for a long period, hang your meat-rack where it will get mild heat from the camp-fire, but no more smoke than is unavoidable, and cover it at night with a piece of canvas. Meat thus prepared is not at its best for eating until it is about a month old ; then slice it thin. After that no sportsman, or hunter, or trapper can get enough of it. Wives and sweethearts who love out-doors dote upon it. To men who write about nature and animals, each chew is a fresh inspiration. No ; this is not " jerked " meat. It is many times better. It is always eaten uncooked, and as a concen- A RAINY DAY IN CAMP 203 trated, stimulating food for men in the wilds, it is valu- able. Charlie Smith and the Norboes were emphatic in their expressions of regret that they never before had known of that process. Said Charlie, ruefully, " Think of the good meat, Mack, that we could have saved for months on Bull River, that long winter, if we had only known about this scheme! We would never have gone meat- hungry! " There is no question about it. The American trap- per has for a century been horribly wasteful of wild life, because he did not know how to dry wild meat, easily and cheaply. Pemmican is all right; but the making of it, on a good, palatable basis, is neither simple nor easy. While on this trip I cured for Mr. Phillips and myself about forty pounds (when dry) of the meat of mountain goat, mule deer, mountain sheep and grizzly bear. The mountain goat meat was good, but slightly tough in comparison with the other meats. It had not the slightest disagreeable flavor, but in spring it is spoiled by the flavor of wild onions. All the meat of mountain sheep and mule deer was tender and delicious, but that of the grizzly bear, when dried, had a queer fishy taste that made it unpalatable. The flesh of the mountain sheep {Ovis canadensis) and mule deer are so nearly identical, both in fibre and in flavor, that in the fall months no human palate can distinguish one from the other. In our small party there were some good story-tellers, — " raconteurs " they call them, east of Altoona ; besides which, my companions were men who had seen and done ao4 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES many things in the late Wild West. Of Charlie Smith, I have already written. The stories he told us of " the Bush River country," and of the wilds of Oregon and Washington, to say nothing of the Elk River region, would make a fascinating book. Mack and John Norboe, of Norwegian parentage, were born on the plains of Texas, grew up as buffalo- hunters, cowboys and Indian fighters, and finally " set- tled down " as guides and trappers. Both participated in the mad and reckless buffalo slaughter of the early seventies, and killed buffaloes of which they cannot now be induced to tell. In the days of Apache and Comanche Indian troubles, when the murder of settlers' families often called for punitive expeditions gathered on short notice, they rode and fought Indians with other white men who believed in the survival of the fittest. Later on. Mack became foreman of a large cattle-ranch, after which he fell in with Charlie Smith, and settled down permanently as his partner. For six years or more they have guided, trapped and hunted together, drawing in John Norboe as a special partner whenever circum- stances tempted him to come in. As a talker, Mack is more reserved than Charlie and John, and rarely relates a long story, especially when it is possible to put that labor upon his partner. He is a bold and successful hunter, and a hardy mountaineer, but on dangerous rocks, his nerves are not quite so cold as those of his partners. When he is afraid, he does not hesitate to say so; which many a pretty gentleman finds it very hard to do. A RAINY DAY IN CAMP 205 John R. Norboe is an almost tireless climber, and bold on the clififs, beyond the limit of safety. In the telling of stories he is both graphic and picturesque, and the manner in which he unconsciously acts out his stories is always irresistibly amusing. He is a reasonably ready talker, and invariably interesting. In both John and Mack the vernacular of the southern cattle-plains was strongly in evidence, and it made them all the more interesting. I mention these three men thus particularly because they are to-day successful trappers of fur-bearing ani- mals. Even amid the present scarcity of such wild life, they are sufficiently wise in wood-craft to make at least half their living by trapping marten, wolverine, ermine, mink, lynx, and (I regret to say it) bear. In the United States the fur-trapper is almost extinct, because there are no longer enough fur-bearing animals to make the pur- suit interesting. I am tempted to add the record of one winter's catch, made on Bull River, by the two Norboes alone. From September 15th until the middle of the following June, they caught 96 marten, 7 wolverines, 4 grizzly bears, 6 beavers, 10 mink and i lynx. During this period they consumed the following food: 3 bull elk, 7 goats, 700 pounds of flour, 200 pounds of sugar, 50 pounds of dried fruit, 15 gallons of berries, 30 pounds of coffee and 20 pounds of rice. Let it not be supposed, however, that even in the country in which we then were, it is always possible for hunters and trappers to supply themselves with wild meat 2o6 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES on short notice. In the spring of 1904 when three mem- bers of our party, Mr. Phillips, Charlie Smith and Mack Norboe, were bear-hunting in the Bull River country, they ran out of meat, and became so hungry for that very necessary item they flung appearances to the winds, and sent Charlie Smith on snow-shoes over two ranges of mountains, thirty miles in and thirty miles back, for a ham! That was sufficiently absurd, but the sequel was even more so. In order to travel rapidly, and be bur- dened with nothing save the ham and his revolver, Charlie left his rifle behind. On the return journey he was followed up by a grizzly bear which also needed a sugar-cured ham! But Charlie was "dead game" and even when face to face with the grizzly and with no rifle, he refused to jettison his cargo. He finally bluffed and eluded the bear, and steered his precious freight safely into port, having made that severe round trip in two days. Mack Norboe has had hundreds of interesting ad- ventures, but it is difficult to induce him to tell of one. There are men who talk more of their one bear than Mack does of his hundred. Only the most skilful stalk- ing at the camp-fire ever rounds up an extended narrative by him. But every man makes exceptions. When the talk turned on the charging habits of grizzlies, a goodly amount of silent treatment, backed up by a few well- aimed questions, finally brought forth this incident: A Rainy Day in Camp A RAINY DAY IN CAMP 207 MACK NORBOE'S BIGGEST BEAR " Yes, I've hunted grizzly b'ar and black b'ar in Colorado, Wyoming, Montana and British Columbia. All told, I think I must have shot up and trapped purty nigh on to a hundred; but out of all the grizzlies I've shot, and shot at, only one ever really charged me. But I don't believe even that one would a-charged me if it hadn't been for my dogs. " That was in Routt County, Colorado, between the White and the B'ar Rivers, in the spring of '91. I think there's a family of big b'ar in that country, just as there's an outfit of specially big black b'ar here on Elk River. In this Colorado country that I'm a-tellin' ye about, there was a whalin' big grizzly that they called ' old Jumbo,' and he'd been killin' cattle for five or six years. From the size of his tracks, everybody knew that he was a shore big 'un, but I don't know of any one who had seen or shot at him. Sam Ware, who had a cattle-ranch on B'ar River, tracked him one day down Crooked-Wash Creek, and had Sam run onto him he shore would have rounded old Jumbo up, for he was a good shot, and full o' sand. " Early in the spring I was out with my two fox- hounds, runnin' a mountain-lion, but the track was so old we didn't jump him. There was considerable snow on the ground, and in making a circuit we struck on old Jumbo's tracks. Gee! but they were big! He had just come out of his winter quarters in the White River range, and was pintin' out toward B'ar River. The 2o8 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES trail was good and fresh, and I put the dogs right on to it. Before they had gone more'n a quarter of a mile, a thunderin' racket broke loose, and I was shore that they had jumped the b'ar. " It was rollin', hilly ground, covered with cedars, and the branches hung so low it made it very bad for seeing any distance. I pulled my freight toward the place where the row was goin' on, but had hardly got fairly started when one of the dogs rushed a-past me makin' for the rear, with his tail between his legs, and his ears a-flappin' up and down like a pair o' bird's wings. The b'ar had plumb stampeded him, and I didn't see him no more until the next day. " I hurried on as fast as I could go, and just as I reached the top of a hill that lay ahead of me, here comes old Jumbo, just a-tearin' along after my Ponto dog; and Ponto was hikin' along in front, barkin' at every jump. That old dog shore had plenty o' sand. First thing I knew, old Jumbo was right there within twenty yards of me; and when he saw me, he rushed straight at me. " I had a 45-90 Winchester, and it was all right. Quick as I could, I sent in two shots, one in the centre of the breast, the other in the shoulder. My Ponto dog had jumped from the trail behind a cedar, and he was between me and the b'ar. My first two shots dropped old Jumbo, all right, but while I was throwin' in the third cartridge, he jumps up and starts for me again, full pelt. " I s'pose my dog thought the b'ar was gettin' too A RAINY DAY IN CAMP 209 close to me. Anyway, he jumps from behind that cedar, plumb at the b'ar's throat, — just as I fired! I didn't see the dog till he filled the sight, just as I pulled the trigger; but when the gun cracked, I knew I'd killed him. The ball went clean through his shoulders, killin' him stone dead; but it also hit the b'ar in a front leg, and when he grabbed his leg between his teeth and bit it, it gave me a chance to put a ball into his neck, which finished him. " The death of my dog made me so mad and locoed I just emptied my Winchester into that b'ar, after he was down for keeps. I felt as I couldn't ever stop shootin' him. He was shore scorched by my last five shots. " That was the only b'ar that ever charged me. Al- though he had only just come out of his winter den, he was very fat. We got out of him over a hundred pounds of grease. He hadn't eaten anything since he holed up in the fall. His stomach was about the size of my two fists, and there was nothing in it but wrinkles. He was a dark silver-tip, and his hair was rather short and thin. We got only twelve-fifty out of him, bounty and hide. The bounty was $10. He was the biggest b'ar I ever saw. No, we didn't weigh him, nor measure him. We had no way to do either; but his dry hide was over ten feet long." THE BIG BEAR THAT GOT AWAY Some one said something about the difficulty of judg- ing distances in the mountains, particularly over snow; and that led to a remark from Mack Norboe aio CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES " Say, Mr. Phillips, how about Big Ben? " " It is always the biggest fish and the biggest bucks that get away," said Mr. Phillips, reflectively; and on being encouraged to " out with it " he outed with it, as follows: — " The bear that Mack refers to with that twinkle in his eye was, in one way, the most remarkable bear I ever saw on foot. We were hunting on the head of Wilson Creek, and it was the 12th of May. In many places the snow was deep on the mountains, but there were a few bare spots on the slides, where it had melted off. In those places, wild onions were springing up, and Mack and I started up a slide to look for a salad. But instead of finding small onions, we found big game. " Mack looked half a mile up a big slide, and said, " ' Oh, my! what a big silver-tip! ' " It was a bear all right, and while he looked very dark, he seemed entirely too big for a black bear. When we looked at him with our glasses, however, we saw that although he was a black bear, he was a whaling big one. He was out on a snow-covered slide, walking slowly about among some low bushes, whose tops rose only a few inches above the snow. " As soon as we had taken a good look at him, we prepared for a run and a big fight. " ' He's a shore big 'un! ' said Mack." (At that point. Mack laughed.) " We kept in the edge of the green timber, and ploughed up through the snow at a great rate, shedding clothing at intervals all the way. In a very short time A RAINY DAY IN CAMP an we got up nearly opposite the bear, but a little below him. The distance was only one hundred and seventy- five yards, and the bear looked as big as ever. Without losing a minute I stepped out, knelt down, and just as the bear looked at me, fired at the centre of him. My bullet flew a foot too high, and the bear started to run. I opened up and fired four more shots at him, and every shot went high, just like so many steps in a ladder. " The bear plunged into the green timber on the opposite side of the slide, and disappeared. I looked at Mack, and said, * I missed html ' " ' Ye shore-ly did! ' said Mack. " We went out upon the slide, and looked at the bear's tracks. Then we both burst out laughing. " That bear was nothing but a measly little cub, fif- teen months old! He was only two sizes bigger than a full-grown woodchuck, and his tracks were simply ridiculous, they were so small. . . . You see, the little brute was out there on the snow, and there was abso- lutely nothing to indicate its size. Instead of being one hundred and seventy-five yards away it was only seventy- five, and each time I fired at the bear I shot clean over it. I never touched a hair of it." " That was the only bear that ever got away from Mr. Phillips!" said Mack. " Yes," said Charlie Smith, " and to cap the climax of that great big bear-fight, I heard the firing, and rushed up from camp with knives and whetstones and things, to help skin a big bear. But it just shows ye how sometimes the mountains fool a man com-pletely ! " CHAPTER XV CAMP-FIRE TALES Charlie Smith's Story — An Outlaw in Camp — A Silent Death Sentence — The Pursuers of Tom Savage Find Him — His Fate — John Norboe Introduces Old John Campbell — Trying to be Chased by a Grizzly — The Bear that Fell into the Fire. Who is there who does not love a good story, told to eager and sympathetic listeners beside a generous camp-fire! Show me a man who does not, and I will show you a man whose heart is not right, whose red corpuscles are green, and whose milk of human-kindness has turned to whey. There are chums and chums ; and guides and guides. I have camped with several kinds of men, — ^white, red, yellow, brown and black. In the lot there have been some of the best of men, and some bad ones. One was a murderer, out of a job ; and another was a donkey with a human head, freshly retired from a great army for being a fool. I have already insinuated, however, that the compo- sition of our party of seven, — counting Kaiser, — left me absolutely nothing to desire. And it was in our ideal camp, in the head of Avalanche Valley, that the spirit moved most upon the company, and the best stories were told. The surroundings were so satisfactory that as we CAMP-FIRE TALES 213 sat by the blazing logs and loafed away the hours of storm and ante-bedtime, each camper brought forth his share of story contributions, and told them in his best style. The good stories told around that camp-fire would easily fill a volume; and I would be more than human if I could refrain from reporting here a few of them, as samples of the whole. One of the best was told by Charlie Smith, precisely as follows, concerning AN OUTLAW IN CAMP " I spent the winter of 1878 at Fort Klamath, in southern Oregon, and in January I had some business at the government land-office, which then was at Lake View, ninety miles away. The trip had to be made by team, so early one morning I left Fort Klamath with a span of good horses and a light wagon. The ground was covered with snow, and as the country was sparsely settled it was necessary to haul supplies for myself and my horses, and camp on the trail. " Late in the afternoon of the second day, I reached the lower end of Drew's valley, and camped for the night. After unhitching my horses and feeding them, I rolled three pitch-pine logs together, and soon had a roaring fire going, over which I boiled a pot of coffee. After supper I spread some hay on the snow, and made my bed for the night. " When it became dark, I laid down on my blankets, to enjoy a real old camp-out smoke, and watch the flicker of my camp-fire on the pine boughs overhead. " I had lain there for some time, and was beginning 214 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES to feel sleepy, when I heard horses coming down the mountain from the west, their hoofs beafing a regular tattoo on the frozen road. A few moments later, an Ind- ian rode up to my fire. That didn't surprise me much, for in those days, one was liable to meet an Indian at any turn in the road. " He reined in his horse, and sprang to the ground, giving a grunt by way of salutation. He had two horses, and had been riding one and leading the other. They were both dripping with perspiration, and seemed just ready to fall in their tracks. After giving me and my outfit a sharp look, he led his ponies to one side, and tied them to a small tree. Then he came and stood by my fire, and asked me for some grass for his horses. I told him I didn't have any grass to spare. It wouldn't have done them any good, even if I had had a ton to give them, for they were just completely run to death. They stood up only a few minutes, and before daylight one of them was dead. " The Indian was dressed in a buckskin shirt and leggings, and a heavy red blanket was belted around his waist. I was sitting on my blanket, and my rifle, which I always kept near me, was tucked under the edge of my bed, by my side. A cold, raw wind was blowing, and as the Indian turned about to warm himself before the fire, the wind caught the corner of his red blanket and blew it up to one side. To my perfect horror, I saw a woman's scalp hanging from his inside belt, a white woman's scalp, with light-colored hair over a foot long! CAMP-FIRE TALES 215 " I can't begin to tell you what a feeling that sight sent through me. It was like a current of electricity; and I felt it clean down to the ends of my toes. Like a flash, I knew that that Indian was a murderer, that he had killed some settler's wife, — and probably the whole family, — stolen their horses, and was being followed by somebody. Even an Indian won't run a good pair of horses to death for just nothing. " Without stopping for an instant to think what I was doing, I grabbed my rifle, cocked it, and brought it to bear on that Indian. "'Lay down, or I'll shoot you!' I fairly yelled at him. " I'll never forget the look he gave me, it was such a horrible mixture of ferocity and fear. He didn't obey the order at once, but glancing over his shoulder he said, * You know me? ' " I said, ' No I don't and I don't want to, either.' " ' Me Tom Savage.' " ' Well,' I said, ' I don't give a cuss how savage you are. If you don't do as I say, I'll fill your hide so full of holes it won't hold baled hay; and you'd better not argue the point.' " Seeing that I had my gun levelled square at his heart, he dropped to the ground. " ' Now,' I said, ' turn your back to me, and if you attempt to get up, or turn over, or look at me to-night, I'll kill you right where you lay.' " After the first shock of my surprise and horror had worn oflf, I did some very hard thinking. I was reason- 21 6 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES ably sure some one was after him, or he would not have run his horses to death. I reasoned that he knew his mounts were done for, and his object in stopping at my camp was to raise my hair, and with my comparatively fresh horses, hit the trail again. " I was in a mighty uncomfortable position. My bet- ter feelings naturally turned against the idea of shoot- ing him, but all the time I was fully resolved he should not escape me. The main cause of immediate uneasiness was that those pine logs might burn out before morning, and that darkness might force me to act. " And so I spent that long, bitter cold night, — one of the longest I ever spent. Once during the night the logs fell apart, and one of them came near rolling on the Indian. He turned over and made as if to spring to his feet. I yelled at him not to get up, but to kick the log back again; so he put his feet against it and shoved it back against the other. When the fire blazed up again I laid my gun down, and put my hands under the blan- kets, for the wind was sharp and my bed was too far from the fire for comfort outside of blankets. " As the night wore away, I began to grow nervous. My business was urgent, and I could not go on without doing something with that fellow. The more I thought over the matter, the more determined I was that he should not escape me. I thought of all sorts of things. " Along about five o'clock in the morning, as I sat there watching and thinking, I noticed the Indian give a slight start, and then appear to be intently listening. I, too, strained my ears for some sound, hoping against CAMP-FIRE TALES 217 hope that some settler would come along; for by that time I had resolved that if assistance did not come soon, I would put a ball through that murderer's head, affix my brand, and leave him in the road. " To my great relief I soon detected the sound of hoof-beats, coming at a sharp gallop down the hillside, from the west. As they came nearer and nearer, the Indian began to beg of me to let him go. It was the first time he had spoken to me after telling me his name in the evening; but I ordered him to lie still. In a few minutes a lieutenant and four soldiers of the regular army trotted up to my smouldering fire. " As the officer in command dismounted, his glance fixed upon the blanketed party in front of the fire, and he took in the whole situation. He went up and poked the Indian with his foot, and as the savage turned his head and looked at him, he said to me, very cheerfully, 'Well, stranger, you've got our bird here! We've been wanting this fellow.' " ' Very likely, officer,' I said, ' and if you hadn't showed up for another hour, a hearse would have been of more use to him than handcuffs.' " ' Would you have executed him? ' " ' He's got a white woman's scalp under his blanket, and I shorely would have branded him so well that he wouldn't have been taken for a maverick. But I'm mighty glad you've come, just the same; and now I re- lease all claims on him.' " They soon had the brute in irons, and I soon had a pot of coffee boiling. While we drank our coffee, we 21 8 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES talked. The lieutenant told me that this Indian was a Bannock, who had been ranging about Stein's Mountain, and he was an outlaw. He had made a sneak on an iso- lated settler, and had murdered the whole family, — man, woman and child. " He hid in the locality for some time, but it soon got too warm for him, and he skipped out and went to the Klamath Reservation. There he hid himself among the numerous tribes living there, until one day while gambling with a Klamath Indian, he stabbed and killed him. This enraged the Indians on the Reservation, and they reported him to the agent, who sent a squad of troopers after him. In some way he got wind of it, and with two stolen ponies he undertook to get back to his old range again. " He was taken to Fort Klamath, tried for murder, and hanged." Charlie Smith is no braggart; and when he told of his deliberate resolve to execute Tom Savage for the murder of a white woman, every one of his auditors felt sure that but for the arrival of the outlaw's pursuers, the grim death sentence that Charlie silently pronounced by the embers of his smouldering camp-fire would resolutely have been carried out. For about the forty-fifth time, the talk and story- telling turned once more to bears. One remark led to another until John Norboe said : " The funniest thing I ever heard of in bear-huntin' was about old Jack Campbell, and CAMP-FIRE TALES 219 THE GRIZZLY THAT FELL INTO THE FIRE " Campbell was a bald-headed old fellow who lived a few miles above Meeker, Colorado. He was great on killin' grizzlies, and he killed so many of 'em that finally he wasn't ever afraid of one, nohow. One time a feller was drivin' along a trail, and he saw old Jack come a-run- nin' out of a thick patch o' young jack pines, with an axe in his hand, lookin' behind him. No, he didn't have no gun. Bimeby he stopped, went back into the jack pines, but soon come a-runnin' out again, just as before. Then he stopped, and blamed if he didn't do it all over again. " Then the feller on the trail got off his wagon, hitched his horses, and went up to see what it all meant. And what d'ye s'pose that old cuss was up to? " Everybody gave it up. " Well, sir, there was a grizzly bear in the middle of them jack pines, eatin' on a dead horse; and blamed if old Jack wasn't a-tryin' to tease that bear into chasin' him out into the open, where he could swing his axe, so that he could kill him, — with his axe I The bear would chase him part way out, then go back to the horse." " Well, did he get him? " " No. About the third trip the bear got scared, and ran off the other way. But that wasn't what I started in to tell ye. One time old man Campbell and another feller was out in the mountains huntin'; and one night they camped right at the foot of a rock cliff about, — well, I don't know just how high it was. In the morn- ing old Jack got up first, built up a big log fire, and put 220 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES on the coffee-pot. He had just begun to cook breakfast, when a little bit of rock fell down, and made him look up. Blamed if there wasn't a good big grizzly standin' on the top of the rock wall, lookin' down over the edge, at old John cookin' his breakfast. " Quick as lightnin' the old man grabs his gun, and sends a ball into the bear; and blamed if the bear didn't come tumblin' down, and fall plumb into the camp-fire. The coffee, an' ashes, an' fire jest flew, and the grizzly jest raised Cain. All that old man Campbell thought about was that good bear-skin, — on the bear, — about to get burnt up! He dropped his gun, rushed up, and begun a-grabbin' at the bear, to drag him out of the fire! The bear was only half dead, and he grabbed, and clawed, and bit at the old man, all the time the old man was grab- bin' at him, and fightin' with him to get him drug outen the fire before his pelt got burnt. The old man never stopped to think that without his gun in his hands the bear might up and maul him. He thought he must get the bear out first, and then finish a-killin' him afterward." As John reached the point of his story, all uncon- sciously he acted out, in thrilling style, the frantic man- ner in which old John Campbell grabbed at a live grizzly, to pluck him as a brand from the burning, and save his vested rights in a twenty-dollar hide. It sent the audience off into roars, the meaning of which John mis- took, for he hastened to add, "Oh, that happened, all right! Mack and me saw that bear's hide, with a burnt patch on the back, didn't we, Mackl " CHAPTER XVI MORE CAMP-FIRE YARNS The Charge of the Duchess — The Death of the Duke of Wellington — The Horror of the Rocks — The Sheep that Couldn't be Caught — The Matches that Wouldn't Light. On several occasions I had heard mention of a nar- row escape that Mr. Phillips enjoyed from the claws of a wounded grizzly bear; and in the leisure hours of that rainy day in camp, it occurred to me to draw out all the facts regarding the affair. So I said: "John, it seems to me that in spite of all the bear- killing that has been done in these mountains, there have been no real bear scrapes, such as some men are always stirring up." " He has always shot so well there hain't been any room for argument," said Mack, with emphasis, " at least not more than that one time with the Duchess." " Did the Duchess charge, regularly? " " She surely did," said Mr. Phillips, quietly, " and I was properly scared, too." " How did it happen that she got a chance at you? " " It was all on account of Charlie's dog, the great and only Kaiser." " Aw, shucksl " broke in Charlie, warmly. " It was 222 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES all on account o' yer bloomin' old camera, that you made me go after! " " Well, I know the picture-machine did enter in, in a way, even though it wasn't there at the finish. It was like this: THE CHARGE OF THE DUCHESS " In the last week of May, last year, we were hunt- ing bear on the head of Wilson Creek, some miles below here. We located a grizzly that we named the Duke of Wellington ; and being unable to get up to him, in the regular way, Charlie was commissioned to go out to the nearest settlement, buy an old horse, bring him in, and kill him for bait. I started out to go part way with Charlie, and hunt back alone. " About the middle of the afternoon we saw a silver- tip, across Wilson Creek up on a snowslide, about four hundred yards away. The whole mountain-side was cov- ered with snow, and it was easy to make a silent stalk, provided the ascent was not too steep. Under cover of some green timber I crawled to within three hundred yards of the bear, and let go a shot. It went too low; but with a quick second shot I rolled her over, and she came down the slide tumbling over and over, snow and bear-paws fairly flying through the air, for about fifty yards. There she stopped, and scrambled to her feet, but seemed unable to go farther on foot. " ' Now,' thought I, ' here is a chance to get pictures of a wounded grizzly.' So I yelled to Charlie to bring up my camera, and started to climb up close to the bear. MORE CAMP-FIRE YARNS 223 Half-way up, Kaiser, sent on by Charlie, passed me and rushed for the bear. Charlie yelled to me, * Shoot! Shoot, or she will get away! ' " When the row began, Charlie was three hundred yards below me, and lost time in getting the camera, but as soon as he secured it, he started up as fast as the snow would let him come. " Up to that time the bear had not seen us, and seem- ingly paid no special attention to the sound of the gun. She was shot too low, — through the brisket and fleshy part of the forelegs, — and while the shock had knocked her down, the only special result was to throw off her safety clutch, and start her machinery working. She evidently thought a big bug had bitten her; and with her head turned under her breast she was looking for it. " Kaiser boldly went right up to her, and when he came within ten feet she saw him, accepted him as the author of her trouble, and went for him like a runaway car on an incline of forty-five. The dog immediately lost all interest in having his picture taken with the dead game, turned tail, and fled down the slide. He came straight for me, possibly assuming that I ought to pro- tect him; and the bear came plunging after him. She plunged and slid on the snow so far that with every jump she covered about twelve feet, and threw up snow like a snow-plough. " All this time, the dog ran straight toward me, and I couldn't fire at the bear for fear of killing the dog. It's against the rules to kill Kaiser, ain't it, Charlie! There wasn't the slightest cJ^ance for me to fire, and 224 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES here came the dog, leading that wounded bear right down upon me, as fast as they could plunge. For a time I was scared stiff, with nothing in the world to do but stand and wait for a chance to shoot. I remember think- ing that ' no matter how it turns out, it's great to see that bear come tearing down that snow-slide ! ' " Kaiser ran for his life, looking back once in a while, and by her sliding as she did, the grizzly gained upon him. Finally, when within twenty-five yards of me, Kaiser saw that in one more jump the bear would grab him; so he dove off to one side, head first, into a clump of bushes, and cleared the track. Then the grizzly saw me, and came on at me, straight as a bullet. As quick as I could I aimed just below her left eye and let go. It was my one chance, and I knew that if I missed there would be a bad mix-up. " My trap-shooting practice stood me in good stead, for that bear's head certainly was a flying target. But the ball struck her right, exploded in her head, and she pitched forward almost upon me, so dead she scarcely kicked. " Charlie was still far below, making frantic efforts to get up and into the scrape with his new six-shooter. He ran like a fairy across a cracked snow-bridge over the creek, and it made me laugh to see the holes he punched in the snow as he came up the slide. He arrived with a face like an angry father. First he lect- ured me, severely; then he laughed; then he thanked me formally and politely, for not shooting the bear through Kaiser! The grizzly was a female, and we MORE CAMP-FIRE YARNS 225 named her the Duchess. She was not as big as the Duke of Wellington." " Now, Mack," said Charlie Smith, as Mr. Phillips finished his narrative, " tell 'em about the Duke o' Well- ington and old Blucher." DEATH OF THE DUKE OF WELLINGTON " Well," said Mack, slowly and bashfully, " we shore hunted that old Duke for a long time, and we didn't get him at all as we expected. As Mr. Phillips said, we were powerful anxious to bust old Duke, for he was the biggest b'ar we ever got track of up here." " Did you bait him with an old horse, as first planned? " " Yes ; and it never took a trick. The b'ars never went nigh it. Could they smell it? Well, I should say they could. We could smell it a mile; and finally we had to move camp on account of it. Somehow a b'ar never means to do what you want him to do." A long pause. " And how did you finally outwit the Duke? " " Oh, just by huntin' for him, — climbin' and huntin', early and late. Late one afternoon Mr. Phillips and myself happened to spy a couple of old-timers up on a mountain-side, eatin' their supper of roots, in a small, grassy spot in a bushy slide. They were across Wilson Creek from us, and half a mile up a steep mountain. I told John we'd shore have to pull our freight quick to get them b'ars before dark, and we went right at it." 226 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES " The first trouble was in gettin' across the creek, where we got badly mixed up in a willow muskeg, and nearly bogged down. After fightin' the brush and mud for an awful long time, and gettin' mighty hot about it, we finally got over, and started for the slide. When we reached an opening we looked up, but the b'ars were gone. " After considerable loud talk, and plenty o' plannin', we started on up. We hadn't gone far when we found from the noise that the old gents had winded us, and rolled their tails off into the brush at one side of the slide. But they had stopped, and although we could hear 'em snortin' and snappin' their teeth, we just couldn't see hide nor hair of 'em, and couldn't get any sort of a shot. At last I did manage to glimpse 'em two or three times, but soon after that they hauled off into heavy timber. " The b'ars started climbin' up, and having nothing else to do, we climbed after them. Finally we all got plumb tired, and concluded it would pay just as well to sit down easy like, and watch. Unfortunately, darkness was almost onto us. It wasn't long before old Blucher poked his head outen the edge of the timber, where I could see him. I says to Mr. Phillips, ' Don't you see him? ' He says, ' No, I can't. It's too dark.' I was plumb anxious for the ball to open, so I says, ' John, may I shoot? ' ' Yes! Bust him! ' says John. Bang! " Down went old man Blucher, hoUerin' and bawlin', ' I'm shot! ' And then Mr. Phillips caught sight of the Duke, and passed him one. He hollered, ' So am I! ' and away the two of 'em went, rollin' and tearin' down the MORE CAMP-FIRE YARNS 227 mountain, bawlin' and bellerin' like two mad bulls. Did you ever shoot a b'ar and have it roll down a hill, and holler? Yes? Well we started down after 'em. I re- marked to Mr. Phillips that they were very tuneful gents, thinking probably he hadn't noticed it; but he was al- ready laughin' fit to kill, and came near rolling down on the Duke. " Finally John M. handed the Duke two more .405 soft-nosed pills, and that settled him. Then we started in to look for Blucher, — and a very dangerous thing to do ; for by that time it was getting dark, and even in day- light, tracking up a wounded grizzly ain't none too safe. But we couldn't do any good at it, so we lit out for camp and got in about ten o'clock." " Did you get Blucher the next day? " " No, we never did get him. It rained all that night, and about daylight a big snow-storm came on, and we couldn't track Blucher, nor flush him a little bit." THE HORROR OF THE ROCKS " I think," said I, once when there was a silence that needed breaking, " I'll tell you a joke on Charlie." Charlie Smith looked at me quick and hard, quite mystified. " Just before we left Goat Pass, Charlie and I once stopped to rest on the steep side of Bird Mountain, about half-way up. It was really very steep, and if a tenderfoot had once got well started to rolling, he would have bowled down about a quarter of a mile without stopping. 228 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES We dug our heels into the ground, leaned back against the mountain, and I led Charlie into telling stories. I got him to tell me about the most scary things that ever happened to him on the rocks, — how the recoil of his gun, in shooting at a mountain sheep, nearly knocked him off a ledge to his death; how he and Mack caught that first mountain goat kid, and other adventures. " Well, by the time we were due to go on, Charlie's stories had scared me until I was stiff with fright, and he came very near having to carry me to camp." " Humph ! Well ! " said Charlie, very energetically, " I'll know enough next time not to tell yarns to anybody while I'm on a mountain." What I told the boys was more than half true. I was nerve -weary that day, and ankle-sore; and the stories that I drew out of my companion scared me quite as ghost-stories used to wreck my courage when I was a small boy. The horror of the rocks has shaken the nerves of many a stout-hearted mountaineer, long after the event. Once Charlie Smith and his former partner, dare- devil Jack Lewis, had a narrow escape from a tragedy on the crags of Sheep Mountain. Charlie almost slid over the edge of a precipice, with Jack close by, and both were as badly scared as these bold men of the mountains ever can be. That night, when they reached their cabin, and went to bed in their double bunk, to sleep the sleep of the exhausted, Charlie was suddenly awakened by Jack, who with both hands seized him by his beard and hair, and pulled at him desperately. MORE CAMP-FIRE YARNS 229 " I surely thought," said Charlie, " that Jack would tear the very face off of me, he was that wild. He yelled, ' Charlie! Charlie!' and we rolled and tumbled around in that bunk until I thought he never would come to his senses. Finally I yelled at him so loud that he woke up, panting like a man who has been running. When I spoke to him, and asked him what he was dreaming about he said, ' My God, Charlie ! I thought you were sliding off them rocks again, and I was tryin' to pull you back.' " " Say, Charlie," said Mack, '"' what's the matter with tellin' how you-all came to scare Jack Lewis that way? " " Oh, I've told that before, nearly a dozen times," said Smith, with an air of strong disapproval. " Never mind, Charlie," said Mr. Phillips, " the Di- rector has never heard it, and I'd like to hear it again myself." " Go on, Charlie; go on." THE SHEEP THAT COULDN'T BE CAUGHT " Well," said Charlie, more cheerfully, " about five years ago an eastern Sportsmen's Association offered five hundred dollars for a live, full-grown mountain sheep ram; so Jack Lewis and I secured a permit from the gov- ernment and started out to land that five hundred. It was in January. The thermometer was away below zero, and the mountains were covered with snow and ice. We dis- covered a band of sheep high up on a wind-swept ridge of Sheep Mountain, and tried to drive them down into 230 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES the deep snow, where we could rope them ; but the sheep were contrary, and took to the crest; and of course Jack and I followed them. " We had just reached the very top of the mountain when I slipped and fell, and started to slide down, with the Elk River Valley as my nearest stopping-place." " What did you think, Charlie, as you were going down? " " Oh, nothing much," he replied. " When I slipped and fell, I knew it was all over with me if I started to roll, or failed to stop myself in the first few feet of my slide. All I could remember in the shape of a prayer was ' Now I lay me down to sleep,' a little rhyme my mother taught me when I was a kid. Just as I was sliding over the edge of the cliff, in a sitting position with my heels digging hard into the snow, I uncovered a trailing-juniper bush, which sprang up between my legs. Well, sir, when that bush sprang up, I embraced it like a long-lost brother. It stopped me all right, but all I could do was to just sit there, with my legs hanging over Kingdom Come. As quick as he could, old Jack threw down to me the end of one of the ropes we had brought along to rope the sheep with, and he snaked me back to the top. I tell you I was mighty glad to shake hands with him! His face was as white as a sheet! " Finally, we corralled the sheep on that peak just above Pass Creek. The top of the peak is hollow, and from the valley it looks like an arm chair with the north side cut off almost square, and pitching straight down five hundred feet or more toward Pass Creek. We made MORE CAMP-FIRE YARNS 231 the climb from below, Jack, who is perhaps the best mountaineer in British Columbia leading the way. As soon as he got his head and shoulders above the seat of the chair he saw a big ram close by, and prepared to rope him. As I was hanging onto the icy rocks at one side, I happened to cast my eyes over the precipice, plumb down into Pass Creek. The sight of it fairly chilled the marrow in my bones, and brought me to my senses. I yelled out to Jack, ' For God's sake. Jack, don't rope that sheep, or he'll pull us both off the mountain! ' At that. Jack pulled up short, and as we clung to the rocks, the sheep stampeded. But the sheep couldn't get up the back or over the arms of the chair, so they came out al- most over the top of Jack, one large ewe making a pass at him with her horns as she went by. After getting away, all the sheep ran south along the mountain, with the exception of the old ram, who circled below them to the north, and headed for Hornaday Mountain. He went down that awful mountain-side just a-tearin'. As we watched, we saw him plunge into a patch of deep snow in Pass Creek and go plumb out of sightl Then we thought we had him. " We scrambled down from the crags, and as soon as it was safe we put on our snow shoes, which we had been carrying on our backs for just such an emergency. As we ran down to the creek, with Jack Lewis leading, one of his shoes came ofif and he turned a complete somer- set, breaking through the crust and disappearing in the deep snow. I was so close after him that before I could stop or swerve to one side, I piled in on top of him. When 232 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES we finally succeeded in getting out, the old ram had broken his way to a safe footing on the cliffs of the oppo- site side of the creek, where he stopped and looked back at us. " But it was something awful the way that sheep worked to get through that snow. It was six or eight feet deep, and had a slight crust on top. He would leap clear to the top of it, strike the crust with his breast and send the pieces flying, forge forward a few feet, then sink again out of sight only to bob up once more and try it again." "So you lost him?" " Sure. But we caught an old nanny goat that was sheltering in a cave, and hog-tied her without hurting her. We were too exhausted to take her down that day, so after spending the night very miserably by a little fire under the cliff-wall near the mouth of the creek, we climbed up the next morning only to find her dead. We thought she died of old age, she was so very old and thin, and almost toothless." Naturally, one tale of hardship brought forth another. The mountains were full of them. The very creek upon which we were camped had been the scene of a tragedy in the early days. Seven white prospectors had gone in somewhere very near to where we then were, camped, and never were heard of more. Some think they were killed by Indians; but they may all have been buried under a great snow-slide. Some one told us of this lonesome tragedy: MORE CAMP-FIRE YARNS 233 THE MATCHES THAT WOULDN'T LIGHT Up in the edge of the mountains, twenty miles or so above the Sulphur Spring, there lived alone, in a lonesome little cabin, a trapper who was an old man. He was too old to live there alone, but the love of the life was strong within him, and he was quite content. One bitter cold day in midwinter, when the snow lay a foot deep on the trail, he shouldered his pack of flour and coffee, and set out from the cabin of Wild-Cat Charlie to go to his own. The labor of the journey at last proved too great for him. As his weary steps dragged more and more slowly through the snow, the cold assailed him at all points. Two miles from the shelter of his cabin, he threw down his pack. A mile farther on, he leaned his rifle against a tree aind left it. Two hundred yards from his cabin he fell, but bravely crawled the remaining distance on his hands and knees. He reached his cabin, entered, closed the door, and whittled some shavings with which to kindle his fire. The kindlings and the dry wood all were there. At last everything was ready for the match, and he essayed to strike it. His fingers were so benumbed by minus forty degrees of cold that they were like sticks of wood. The first match broke short off, unlighted. So did the next, and the next, and the next. It was beyond his power to strike the match that 234 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES would have started the fire that would have saved his life. Days after, he was found lying upon the floor, on the remains of the matches that would not strike, frozen as hard as the rocks of the cruel mountains around his lonely cabin. CHAPTER XVII A GREAT MOUNTAIN SHEEP HUNT Variations in Sheep Hunting — ^Artistic Value of Scenery in Hunting — John Norboe's Peril — Camp Necessity — Remarkable Goat Licks — Sheep Signs — A Very Long Stalk — Attack in a Wind Storm — Misses and Hits — Mack Norboe's "Bungers" — Three Dead Rams .—A Night of Terror. "Though far be the glacier-filled fountain, The foot of the hunter is free. Though high be the ram on the mountain, The hunter climbs higher than he." In the hunting of mountain sheep in British Colum- bia, there are many variations. In the south, among the house-roof mountains, it is possible that you may be re- quired to climb very high, amid real perils on the clififs. You may make tremendously long and steep climbs with- out perils, or the sheep may run into your arms at an elevation of eight thousand feet, as did the pair which Mr. Phillips photographed. In northern British Colum- bia and Yukon Territory, you can find sheep on low, hill- like mountains in high country; or you may, like Charles Sheldon, find them on slide-rock so fearfully steep that you cannot measure a sheep, even after you have killed it. It is not all of hunting to kill game. The surround- ings, and how you used them to outwit your keen-eyed »35 236 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES quarry, sometimes are fully as interesting as the game itself. It is far from ideal hunting to tramp hour after hour through a monotonous, brush-filled forest, " head " the soggy-banked ponds and flounder through bogs for a final shot at a moose in a tangle of underbrush so thick you can see through it only a few yards. It takes a mighty fine animal to compensate one for mean hunting- grounds. But take mountains like ours, where at every mile there rises around you a new cyclorama of crag and peak, ridge and valley, timber, slide and glacier, and it takes a fine animal to draw your gaze from the pictures! To kill, in such a setting, a mountain ram, a goat or a grizzly bear is Hunting, indeed. With all her bison and tigers, buffalo and bear, India has nothing like it south of the Himalayas, not even in the Nilgiris. Judging by a thou- sand photographs, I should say that with all her multi- tudes of big game, Africa has nothing like it, anywhere. South America has her Andes, but alas! they are deplor- ably barren of animal life. To one who has seen the cyclorama, and the dead game lying on the mountain — as I did, — Mr. Phillips's hunt for mountain sheep in the Big Bend of Avalanche Creek was a fine performance, and it is a pleasure to help the Reader to see it as it was. It fairly illustrates one phase, and a difficult one, of mountain sheep hunting in those precipitous mountains. It was undertaken for the special purpose of procur- ing one or two extra-fine rams, for a laudable purpose, and it was the appearance of the twelve rams on the sum- A GREAT MOUNTAIN SHEEP HUNT 237 mit sky-line on the evening of September 15th which led the hunters into that particular territory. John Norboe returned from a look into that region on the very night the sheep w^ere seen, and in terse but picturesque language he impressed his hearers with the idea that it was a bad country in which to hunt. Mack then remarked, with emphasis, " Well, if he says it's bad country, you kin shore set it down that it's a terror! " Said John, " Director, I was in a place this afternoon that I don't believe you would be willing to get into for a million dollars. In fact, money couldn't hire me to try it again myself. I started to climb up a bad place, and when I got away up, I couldn't go on, and I couldn't get down ! For a while I just hung on, and wondered how many days it would take the boys to find my body." " And how did you get out of it? " " Well, at last I managed to take my shoes off, and hang 'em round my neck. Then I hung on till I got my nerve back, and finally I managed to climb on up. I haven't been so skeered in years. It's lucky I didn't have my gun with me. I'd shore a-dropped it! " This was the country south-east of Phillips Peak. On the morning of the i6th, Mr. Phillips and the two Norboes took the four-by-seven silk tent, a scanty supply of blankets and three days' rations, and marched off down Avalanche Creek. They planned to strike the sheep country from the south, and the idea was right. They tramped down Avalanche Creek to where it strikes Roth Mountain, beyoqd which it was unexplored. At that 238 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES point it turns to the east, in a right angle, and in the bend of this elbow rise the Phillips Mountains. From that point they followed the stream eastward, crossed some immense rock slides, and finally entered a tract of heavy, moist and mossy green timber, two miles long. In the centre of this ribbon of timber, they found the tepee- poles of what once had been a Stoney Indian camp ; and there they pitched their own tiny tent for two, and called the place " Camp Necessity." " There shore must be game about here," said John Norboe, as he kicked at a piece of mountain sheep skull. " Injuns hain't been campin' here for fun." After a hasty luncheon, Mr. Phillips and Mack Nor- boe set off up the northern mountains, climbing up the face of a lofty ridge that rose like a gigantic roof a mile and a half from base to summit, and two miles long. At its western end this ridge terminates against a towering peak, with perpendicular walls. The eastern end stops abruptly in mid-air, forming a commanding point. On the southern face were two or three outcroppings of rock wall, precisely like dormer windows. It was from the eastern point of this ridge that Charlie Smith and I saw a very spectacular bear-hunt a little later on, when I came to know all that ground very well. This ridge is de- scribed because it presently became a storm-centre of some magnitude. In climbing the ridge, the hunters steered well toward the west, in order to strike the cliffs that rose from that extremity. Half a mile up, they found the most exten- sive series of goat-licks that were seen on our whole trip. A GREAT MOUNTAIN SHEEP HUNT 239 They were situated in a scattered clump of stunted spruces, toward which well-worn goat-trails led from various directions. The earth was sufficiently impreg- nated with mineral salts that the goats — and sheep, also, beyond a doubt — were very fond of it. The animals had dug under the roots of ten or a dozen spruce trees until they were undermined by great cavities, and the large roots, exposed in mid-air, looked like the bodies of boa constrictors and pythons. The rough bark of the spur-roots was covered with fine, soft white hair which plainly told the species of earth-eater most in evi- dence. The goats had worked under the trees because the earth was more moist there, and their mining opera- tions were not disturbed by the sliding snow and rocks that annually assailed the unprotected surfaces of the mountain. The zeal and industry of the animals, and their strength also, was amazingly portrayed. They had dug out and thrown aside quantities of stones, which had rolled down the mountain side, and the whole place looked as disturbed and bare as if it had lately been worked over with mattock and rake.* Mr. Phillips's excellent photograph of one of the goat-workings under a spruce tree is shown herewith. These goat-licks are fairly common throughout the moun- * In 1902, Messrs. G. O. Shields and W. H. Wright found on the west fork of the north branch of the Athabasca River a goat-Uck of still greater pro- portions than those described above. Trails lead to it from a radius of five miles. A cut bank fifteen feet high has been eaten away, until trees and large stones have been undermined and thrown down the mountain-side. A man can ride on horseback behind some of the roots now exposed. The earth is described as a light, chalky clay. 240 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES tains of British Columbia. There is one within two miles of Charlie Smith's ranch on Elk River. On reaching the summit of the lofty ridge, the hunters found themselves at the foot of an unscalable wall be- tween two hundred and three hundred feet high, with a slide-rock basin beyond, another transverse ridge beyond that, and no sheep in sight. On the north side, their first ridge dropped away very steeply to a V-shaped valley and a creek. The great ridge that rose beyond that was even taller than that on which they stood; and creek and ridge swung around the eastern end of ridge No. i at very nearly a right angle, debouching into Avalanche Valley half a mile below the new camp. The summit of Ridge No. i reminded me so much of the business centre of a cyclorama .that I named it that, and called its eastern terminus Cyclorama Point. Two other interesting incidents marked Mr. Phillips's first afternoon on Cyclorama Ridge. One was a goat per- formance, the other the discovery of good mountain sheep signs. The former is thus described in detail by Mr. Phillips : " On rounding a small cliff that broke out of the side of the mountain, we discovered about fifty yards away to our left, a nanny goat, a yearling billy and a kid. In Mack Norboe's mountain language' he called them an old lady, a little billy and a goatee. As goats are always interesting to me, on account of their propensity for doing queer things, we sat down to watch them. " They had not seen us, and the old mother was busy licking the face of the clifif. Perhaps she was finding A GREAT MOUNTAIN SHEEP HUNT 241 something alkaline. The young billy was growing his first whiskers, and in a dignified manner he resented cer- tain playful advances on the part of the kid. "After we had watched them for some time, the mother-goat winded us, and after a mild stare in our direction, started up the apparently vertical cliff, the young billy following her. The kid, not knowing of our presence, and being deserted by its mother, immediately set out on its own account to climb up a perpendicular chimney in the wall. The crack was about four feet wide, and inasmuch as there were no footholds discernible from where we stood, we expected to witness the ultimate downfall of the kid. " The little fellow bounced nimbly from side to side, making jumps from two to three feet high. When about twenty-five feet up he made a spring across, struck on an apparently smooth wall, and seemed to lose his footing. The most surprising thing was that he shoved himself backward with his front feet, and alighted safely on the invisible foothold which he had left four feet below. He then bounced down from side to side, like a rubber ball, galloped like a hobby-horse under the base of the clifif, and scrambled up after his mother and older brother. " When we arose and walked to the goats' point of departure, they looked down upon us from the clifif, with the indifiference of conscious security. We were no doubt the first human beings they had ever seen, and of course they regarded us with curiosity. Possibly they thought we were bears of a new species, walking upright." 242 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES Quite near to the haunt of the goats, the hunters dis- covered four or five wild-animal beds which Mack thought had been made by sheep. This belief was con- firmed by the finding of some sheep hair. From the character of the spot, and the absence of protecting cliffs, the sheep sign was supposed to represent a band of ewes, until presently the hunters found unmistakable evidence of the recent presence of a band of large rams, which evidently had lived for some weeks in that neighborhood. The contiguous ridges and slides were carefully exam- ined, but no sheep were seen that day, and at nightfall the hunters returned to the little pulpit-like spot in the green timber whereon John Norboe had with great pains made a camp close beside an old Indian trail. On the following morning the sheep-hunt opened early and with vigor. The three hunters packed their entire outfit upon their backs, and set out to make a hunt up the newly-found creek, — which later on for a good reason they elected to call Grizzly Creek, — and camp well northward of its valley. They started up that creek from its mouth, half a mile below their camp, but had not gone more than a mile through its tangle of down timber when they discovered their long-lost band of rams. They were on the western face of Cyclorama Ridge, under a point which sheltered them from the wind, and the wind was blowing half a gale from the hunters perilously near the sheep. The plan of the hunt was quickly formed. John Nor- boe was sent down to Avalanche Creek, with all the outfit. Mr. Phillips and Mack stripped for a strenuous effort, A GREAT MOUNTAIN SHEEP HUNT 243 and mapped out a long and severe detour to the east- ward, away from the sheep, and around them. The cir- cuit they actually made took them up to the top of the eastern mountain, northward under the shelter of its crest for two miles, then a long swing westward into the valley of Grizzly Creek. After that they climbed southward to the top of Cyclorama Ridge, and at last, after a four-mile struggle, stood above their quarry and dead to leeward of it. In looking over the summit, they were rejoiced to find that the sheep had not moved. Keeping well below the crest of the ridge, the hunters moved eastward until they reached their chosen line of approach, then began to work downward under cover of some stunted spruces and aspens. When they gained the high, dormer-window point under which the sheep had been seen, the gale was so strong that it was almost impossible to face it. It was laden with so much dust that had been swept off the rocks, that Mr. Phillips's eyes watered so copiously he could scarcely see. They could hear dead timber crashing down in Avalanche Val- ley, and the quaking-asps around them were whipped almost to the ground. Finally a fierce gust of wind bent down a clump of bushes in such a manner that a massive pair of ram's horns stood revealed to the anxious eyes of the searchers, and only seventy- five yards away! The next instant, the bushes sprang up again and masked the quarry. Then Mr. Phillips trained his rifle to bear on the spot desired, and waited for another gust. It came; the bushes gave way for an indistinct glimpse, and Mr. Phillips 244 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES fired at the ram's shoulder. This is the hunter's own account of what followed : " At the roar of the gun, the sheep broke away in all directions. Three ran south-west, across the slide and up the next ridge. I thought that the leading ram was the one at which I had shot. As he ran, I fired three more shots at him ; but the wind either swayed me or drifted my bullets, for they only threw up dust beside him. After missing three times, I realized that I must get him with the fourth and last shot, or not at all; so I quickly sat down, took a knee-rest,, and held to the left. With that shot I hit him high up in the shoulders, striking the spinal column, and killing him instantly. Fortunately he rolled only once, and lodged against a stump. " While reloading my gun I sat watching the two three-year-old companions of my big ram, which were making frantic leaps up the ridge toward the high peak. Just as I finished loading, I heard Mack yelling in great excitement, fifty yards below me, 'Jack! Jack! Run here, quick. Two hungers! ' " Mack and Charlie always speak of rams with big horns as " hungers " — a very convenient term when breath is scarce, and rams are running. " Running at top speed down the point, I soon saw two large rams, two hundred yards away. They were running north, through a patch of burned timber, quak- ing-asp and willows, which made it very difficult to get any kind of a shot. The speed with which those rams bounded over the down timber and brush was really wonderful. They seemed scarcely to touch the ground, Mr. Phillips's Finest Mountain Sheep ("The Carnegie Kam.") A GREAT MOUNTAIN SHEEP HUNT 245 and their white rump-patches gave them the appear- ance of two large pieces of paper blown along by the wind. " The rearmost ram carried the larger horns, and at him I fired three shots, but without result. Again I sat down, and holding high above the white patch on the seat of his pants, fired again, just as he disappeared in a patch of green timber. " There were originally eight rams in that herd, and of these, Norboe had seen two run down toward the creek. Immediately following my first shots, the herd had di- vided into three groups, which fled in three directions. After the excitement was over, I proceeded to make ex- planations to Mack, to account for the firing of nine shots and a score of only one ram. The old fellow looked at me with a merry glint in his keen gray eyes, and handed me my hunting-shirt. " ' You and your big gun shorely had a full-grown time stampedin' them sheep, and shootin' off a whole lot o' timber.' " This observation was at the expense of my .405- calibre gun. Mack being an advocate of the .33 high- power gun. * Them cannon guns,' he once said to me, * gives me the buck fever whenever I unlimbers 'em, thinkin' of the roar, and the kick that's comin'! When you shoots standin', they shoves you around like a monkey on a stick; and if you sets down and turns 'em loose, they move a feller along the ground so quick that it ain't pleasant. If you're lucky enough to hit your game, it tears his hide open; besides which, them big explosions 246 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES blasts down the standin' scenery, and scares the rest of the game plumb outen the country.' " Presently John Norboe joined us, and together we climbed up the point to the body of the ram which I had killed. We photographed, measured, skinned and weighed him. His horns measured fifteen and one-half inches in basal circumference, and his weight on the director's scales was two hundred and eighty-five pounds. All this time the wind poured a strong blast along the side of the mountain. After we had finished our work, John Norboe took the skin, with the unskinned head attached, and a small quantity of meat, and started for camp, while Mack and I set out to investigate my bad shooting. " On visiting the spot whereon Ram No. i had stood when I fired at him, we were surprised to find blood. This we trailed up, around the rocky point from which I had fired, and soon found where the sheep had fallen and started to roll. We found him far down, lying dead within a hundred yards of the brook, where he had lodged against a stout young quaking-asp. He was the leader of the band, we thought, and the others which ran north had hesitated after he was stricken, thus giving me a chance to fire at them, also. " This sheep was a much larger ram than the first one. He was forty-one inches high at the shoulders, the way Mr. Hornaday measures animals, with the elbow pushed up, and he weighed three hundred and sixteen pounds. He was the largest ram I ever killed, or saw, although at that time he was not in fat condition. We A GREAT MOUNTAIN SHEEP HUNT 247 thought that had he lived he would have put on another thirty or forty pounds by the time severe winter weather set in. My bullet struck him just behind the shoulder, ranged back through his stomach, and passed out on the opposite side. " After that we climbed up to see what had become of my third ram, and were very much surprised at find- ing him lying dead! I had killed my legal limit of mountain sheep, which was one more than I had in- tended! This one was five years old, with horns already fifteen and one-half inches in circumference, and his gross weight was two hundred and eighty-seven pounds. " I felt very badly over this sheep, for I had intended to kill only two, one for the Carnegie Museum, and an- other for the director. But there was no time to spend on the mountain in regrets. Our long stalk, and the work afterward on the rams, had carried us well toward the close of the day. By that time the wind had abated, it was raining softly, and almost dark. Packing up all the meat we could carry. Mack and I laboriously worked our way down to Avalanche Creek, to the new camp which John had made. " That was a damp and gloomy spot; and we named it Camp Necessity. We were profoundly tired, and ravenously hungry — having had no mid-day bite ; but the delicious mutton chops which John Norboe had ready for us soon put us at peace with all the world. " But not for long; for that proved to be a fearful night. It rained all night, and nearly drowned us out; but that was not the worst of it. The wind increased in 248 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES violence, and came roaring down the narrow valley until the trees rocked under its force, and many tree-tops were snapped off and hurled to the ground. I could feel roots moving under our bed of boughs, like great snakes writhing, and was thoroughly afraid that a tree-top, or a tree, would be snapped off and sent crashing down upon us. " At last I got so nervous I could lie still no longer, and crawled out of the tiny tent, ostensibly to mend the fire. John Norboe occupied my canvas sleeping-bag, outside. " ' Have you got a pipeful of tobacco, John? ' I asked, for the sole purpose of rousing him a bit. " ' No, I hain't,' said John, ' but I know what's the matter with you ! ' " ' Well, what? ' " ' You're scared/ ' " ' Well, so are you! ' " ' Say, Mr. Phillips, does this sleepin' bag o' yourn ever leak? ' '"No. Why?' " ' Becos it's full o' water that's run in at the top, and I've been a-hopin' it would run out below.' " But at last the long night wore away without accident." Two days later I assisted in working up those three fine specimens, especially in the work on the heads. In fact, I may say I was chief mourner; but it was a task of great interest, as will be noted elsewhere. The Brooklyn Ram, Thirty Minutes After Death (Slightly distended by gas.) A GREAT MOUNTAIN SHEEP HUNT 249 DIMENSIONS AND WEIGHT OF MOUNTAIN SHEEP RAMS SHOT BY JOHN M. PHILLIPS, SEPTEMBER 19, 1905 No. 2, for Brooklyn Museum. Age Height at shoulders Length of head and body Girth, behind foreleg . " at middle of body at loins Circumference of fore leg, at elbow hind leg, at knee . Distance from elbow to head of femur Circumference of neck, at throat Point of shoulder to rear of rump Weight by scales * This extra large measurement probably was due to gas. CHAPTER XVIII MOUNTAIN SHEEP NOTES The Culminating Point of a Species — Measurements of Record Heads — Range of the Big-Horn — The White Sheep — The Black Sheep — Fannin's Sheep — Fighting Noses of our Specimens — Reinforce- ment of the Neck — Captain RadclifFe's Opinion About Broken Tips — Measurements of our Sheep — Comparative Dimensions of Sheep, Goat and Mule Deer — Comparison of Sheep and Goat — Enemies of Mountain Sheep — Impending Extinction in British Columbia. Mr. Phillips's mountain sheep rams were to all of us specimens of great interest. All three were carefully measured and weighed, and the skins of all were saved entire, for mounting. The oldest and largest ram, and the five-year-old, were presented by Mr. Phillips to the Carnegie Museum at Pittsburg, and the second in size was given to me, for presentation to the Brooklyn Insti- tute Museum. American literature is not so much overburdened with information regarding the mountain sheep of North America that I need apologize for noting here a few of the most important facts regarding that group of animals. Be it known, therefore, that it is in the very locality in which we then found ourselves — southeastern British Columbia, — that the true Rocky Mountain Big-Horn, (now Ovts canadensis, but for eighty years called Ovts montana), reaches its maximum development. 250 MOUNTAIN SHEEP NOTES 251 The culminating point of any important species, or the locality in which it grows largest and carries the largest horns, is a very interesting item of its life history. For the past five years, or thereabouts, we have known that throughout the wide range of the Big-Horn, — let us say from the Grand Canyon of the Colorado to the Liard River, a distance of two thousand miles, — the largest horns come from southeastern British Columbia and southwestern Alberta, within a radius of two hundred miles of Banff. I have had the pleasure of measuring,-^ in the severest manner possible in taking such dimen- sions, — several very fine heads owned by personal friends, to which I can add the splendid head procured for me in Banff by Mr. G. O. Shields. The circumference measurements of these specimens were taken in as perfect a plane as if each horn had been cut in two with a saw on the line of the tape ; and there is no better place in which to place them before the Reader than here. A " record head " of a big-game animal is one which by reason of its commanding proportions and superior qualities is entitled to a place in every printed list of heads or horns which undertakes to set forth the finest existing specimens of that species. A record head is not neces- sarily the largest head " on record." Usually, it is an impossibility to find " the finest head in the world " of any given species, because so many qualities enter in for judgment that it is almost impossible for any one speci- men to combine all of them. As a rule, the longest horns lack massiveness, and the thickest horns lack in length. Real grandeur is not often attainable by mere attenuation. 252 CAMP-FIRES IN THE CANADIAN ROCKIES Massiveness, symmetry, texture and color are not to be ignored for the sole sake of inches on the tape. All the heads listed below are, in my judgment, a Pi < !z; H 00 < P^K W H > t) H- ( B| w fa H ^ S2 w w p< Q t3 < s < '^ I— I ►^ c« PQ > I— ( H < < O a W PQ CO 1 P4 Fully dry. Avery fine specimen. Measured i8i"in circumference when killed. Measured i8|"in circumference when killed. Fully dry when measured. Fully dry when measured. •siuoij /fip JO Ji{^PA\ i \ \ \ i •sdlj U33M) -aq 33UEJSIQ o r^ vo lo r^ •pE9lds apisjno Jsapiy^ M 11 (VI 1-1 r-^ « M N N M •3Ajn3 apis -jno uo xpSuaq ro rf- N NO ■+ m (VI -4- Th •du uiojj ^^i aouajajiuriDjiQ ■>!- (N »0 lO vO •asEquiojj^^gi 33uajajuin3Ji[) UO O ro lo o HH H HH hH l-l aauajiajuinojQ l-l M l-H >H (I Madison Grant . John M. Phillips E. J. Taylor . . J. E. Roth . . W. T. Hornaday V T3 C V O ;^ CO '^ V ^ •.4-1 3 C! ca J3 cs >- > U 4, O •J= J3 J5 uH "> S S j= . ■£ *^ "« t- <*-^ o o u <« S u (4 lU M H " u g "2 '-' o i I - Ui JuJ M «